<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<h1> THE PRINCE AND THE PAUPER </h1>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<h2> by Mark Twain </h2>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="bookcover.jpg (148K)" src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="frontispiece1.jpg (135K)" src="images/frontispiece1.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="frontispiece2.jpg (123K)" src="images/frontispiece2.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="titlepage.jpg (62K)" src="images/titlepage.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="greatseal" id="greatseal"></SPAN><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="greatseal.jpg (68K)" src="images/greatseal.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/>The Great Seal <br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="dedication.jpg (21K)" src="images/dedication.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="inscription.jpg (16K)" src="images/inscription.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/> <br/><br/></p>
<blockquote>
<p><b> I will set down a tale as it was told to me by one who had it of his
father, which latter had it of HIS father, this last having in like
manner had it of HIS father—and so on, back and still back, three
hundred years and more, the fathers transmitting it to the sons and so
preserving it. It may be history, it may be only a legend, a
tradition. It may have happened, it may not have happened: but it
COULD have happened. It may be that the wise and the learned
believed it in the old days; it may be that only the unlearned and the
simple loved it and credited it.</b></p>
</blockquote>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<h2> CONTENTS </h2>
<table summary="">
<tr>
<td>
I.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c1">The birth of the Prince and the Pauper.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
II.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c2">Tom’s early life.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
III.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c3">Tom’s meeting with the Prince.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
IV.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c4">The Prince’s troubles begin.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
V.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c5">Tom as a patrician.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
VI.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c6">Tom receives instructions.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
VII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c7">Tom’s first royal dinner.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
VIII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c8">The question of the Seal.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
IX.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c9">The river pageant.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
X.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c10">The Prince in the toils.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XI.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c11">At Guildhall.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c12">The Prince and his deliverer.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XIII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c13">The disappearance of the Prince.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XIV.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c14">‘Le Roi est mort’—vive le Roi.‘</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XV.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c15">Tom as King.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XVI.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c16">The state dinner.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XVII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c17">Foo-foo the First.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XVIII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c18">The Prince with the tramps.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XIX.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c19">The Prince with the peasants.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XX.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c20">The Prince and the hermit.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXI.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c21">Hendon to the rescue.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c22">A victim of treachery.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXIII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c23">The Prince a prisoner.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXIV.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c24">The escape.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXV.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c25">Hendon Hall.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXVI.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c26">Disowned.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXVII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c27">In prison.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXVIII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c28">The sacrifice.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXIX.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c29">To London.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXX.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c30">Tom’s progress.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXXI.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c31">The Recognition procession.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXXII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c32">Coronation Day</SPAN>.<br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
XXXIII.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c33">Edward as King.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
CONCLUSION.
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#c34">Justice and Retribution.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td>
</td>
<td>
<SPAN href="#link35-403">Notes.</SPAN><br/>
</td>
</tr>
</table>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link01-021.jpg (73K)" src="images/01-021.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link01-023" id="link01-023"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link01-023.jpg (147K)" src="images/01-023.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter I. The birth of the Prince and the Pauper.</p>
<p>In the ancient city of London, on a certain autumn day in the second
quarter of the sixteenth century, a boy was born to a poor family of the
name of Canty, who did not want him. On the same day another English
child was born to a rich family of the name of Tudor, who did want him.
All England wanted him too. England had so longed for him, and hoped
for him, and prayed God for him, that, now that he was really come, the
people went nearly mad for joy. Mere acquaintances hugged and kissed
each other and cried. Everybody took a holiday, and high and low, rich and
poor, feasted and danced and sang, and got very mellow; and they kept this
up for days and nights together. By day, London was a sight to see,
with gay banners waving from every balcony and housetop, and splendid
pageants marching along. By night, it was again a sight to see, with
its great bonfires at every corner, and its troops of revellers making
merry around them. There was no talk in all England but of the new
baby, Edward Tudor, Prince of Wales, who lay lapped in silks and satins,
unconscious of all this fuss, and not knowing that great lords and ladies
were tending him and watching over him—and not caring, either.
But there was no talk about the other baby, Tom Canty, lapped in his
poor rags, except among the family of paupers whom he had just come to
trouble with his presence.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c2" id="c2"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link02-025" id="link02-025"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-025.jpg (57K)" src="images/02-025.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter II. Tom’s early life.</p>
<p>Let us skip a number of years.</p>
<p>London was fifteen hundred years old, and was a great town—for that
day. It had a hundred thousand inhabitants—some think double as
many. The streets were very narrow, and crooked, and dirty,
especially in the part where Tom Canty lived, which was not far from
London Bridge. The houses were of wood, with the second story
projecting over the first, and the third sticking its elbows out beyond
the second. The higher the houses grew, the broader they grew.
They were skeletons of strong criss-cross beams, with solid material
between, coated with plaster. The beams were painted red or blue or
black, according to the owner’s taste, and this gave the houses a
very picturesque look. The windows were small, glazed with little
diamond-shaped panes, and they opened outward, on hinges, like doors.</p>
<p>The house which Tom’s father lived in was up a foul little pocket
called Offal Court, out of Pudding Lane. It was small, decayed, and
rickety, but it was packed full of wretchedly poor families. Canty’s
tribe occupied a room on the third floor. The mother and father had
a sort of bedstead in the corner; but Tom, his grandmother, and his two
sisters, Bet and Nan, were not restricted—they had all the floor to
themselves, and might sleep where they chose. There were the remains
of a blanket or two, and some bundles of ancient and dirty straw, but
these could not rightly be called beds, for they were not organised; they
were kicked into a general pile, mornings, and selections made from the
mass at night, for service.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link02-028" id="link02-028"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-028.jpg (94K)" src="images/02-028.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Bet and Nan were fifteen years old—twins. They were
good-hearted girls, unclean, clothed in rags, and profoundly ignorant.
Their mother was like them. But the father and the grandmother
were a couple of fiends. They got drunk whenever they could; then
they fought each other or anybody else who came in the way; they cursed
and swore always, drunk or sober; John Canty was a thief, and his mother a
beggar. They made beggars of the children, but failed to make
thieves of them. Among, but not of, the dreadful rabble that
inhabited the house, was a good old priest whom the King had turned out of
house and home with a pension of a few farthings, and he used to get the
children aside and teach them right ways secretly. Father Andrew also
taught Tom a little Latin, and how to read and write; and would have done
the same with the girls, but they were afraid of the jeers of their
friends, who could not have endured such a queer accomplishment in them.</p>
<p>All Offal Court was just such another hive as Canty’s house.
Drunkenness, riot and brawling were the order, there, every night and
nearly all night long. Broken heads were as common as hunger in that
place. Yet little Tom was not unhappy. He had a hard time of
it, but did not know it. It was the sort of time that all the Offal
Court boys had, therefore he supposed it was the correct and comfortable
thing. When he came home empty-handed at night, he knew his father
would curse him and thrash him first, and that when he was done the awful
grandmother would do it all over again and improve on it; and that away in
the night his starving mother would slip to him stealthily with any
miserable scrap or crust she had been able to save for him by going hungry
herself, notwithstanding she was often caught in that sort of treason and
soundly beaten for it by her husband.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link02-029" id="link02-029"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-029.jpg (55K)" src="images/02-029.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>No, Tom’s life went along well enough, especially in summer. He
only begged just enough to save himself, for the laws against mendicancy
were stringent, and the penalties heavy; so he put in a good deal of his
time listening to good Father Andrew’s charming old tales and
legends about giants and fairies, dwarfs and genii, and enchanted castles,
and gorgeous kings and princes. His head grew to be full of these
wonderful things, and many a night as he lay in the dark on his scant and
offensive straw, tired, hungry, and smarting from a thrashing, he
unleashed his imagination and soon forgot his aches and pains in delicious
picturings to himself of the charmed life of a petted prince in a regal
palace. One desire came in time to haunt him day and night: it
was to see a real prince, with his own eyes. He spoke of it once to
some of his Offal Court comrades; but they jeered him and scoffed him so
unmercifully that he was glad to keep his dream to himself after that.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link02-030" id="link02-030"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-030.jpg (80K)" src="images/02-030.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He often read the priest’s old books and got him to explain and
enlarge upon them. His dreamings and readings worked certain changes
in him, by- and-by. His dream-people were so fine that he grew to
lament his shabby clothing and his dirt, and to wish to be clean and
better clad. He went on playing in the mud just the same, and
enjoying it, too; but, instead of splashing around in the Thames solely
for the fun of it, he began to find an added value in it because of the
washings and cleansings it afforded.</p>
<p>Tom could always find something going on around the Maypole in Cheapside,
and at the fairs; and now and then he and the rest of London had a chance
to see a military parade when some famous unfortunate was carried prisoner
to the Tower, by land or boat. One summer’s day he saw poor Anne
Askew and three men burned at the stake in Smithfield, and heard an
ex-Bishop preach a sermon to them which did not interest him. Yes,
Tom’s life was varied and pleasant enough, on the whole.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link02-031" id="link02-031"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-031.jpg (171K)" src="images/02-031.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>By-and-by Tom’s reading and dreaming about princely life wrought
such a strong effect upon him that he began to <i>act</i> the prince,
unconsciously. His speech and manners became curiously ceremonious and
courtly, to the vast admiration and amusement of his intimates. But
Tom’s influence among these young people began to grow now, day by
day; and in time he came to be looked up to, by them, with a sort of
wondering awe, as a superior being. He seemed to know so much! and
he could do and say such marvellous things! and withal, he was so deep and
wise! Tom’s remarks, and Tom’s performances, were
reported by the boys to their elders; and these, also, presently began to
discuss Tom Canty, and to regard him as a most gifted and extraordinary
creature. Full-grown people brought their perplexities to Tom for
solution, and were often astonished at the wit and wisdom of his
decisions. In fact he was become a hero to all who knew him except
his own family—these, only, saw nothing in him.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link02-032" id="link02-032"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-032.jpg (47K)" src="images/02-032.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Privately, after a while, Tom organised a royal court! He was the
prince; his special comrades were guards, chamberlains, equerries, lords
and ladies in waiting, and the royal family. Daily the mock prince
was received with elaborate ceremonials borrowed by Tom from his romantic
readings; daily the great affairs of the mimic kingdom were discussed in
the royal council, and daily his mimic highness issued decrees to his
imaginary armies, navies, and viceroyalties.</p>
<p>After which, he would go forth in his rags and beg a few farthings, eat
his poor crust, take his customary cuffs and abuse, and then stretch
himself upon his handful of foul straw, and resume his empty grandeurs in
his dreams.</p>
<p>And still his desire to look just once upon a real prince, in the flesh,
grew upon him, day by day, and week by week, until at last it absorbed all
other desires, and became the one passion of his life.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link02-033" id="link02-033"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link02-033.jpg (41K)" src="images/02-033.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>One January day, on his usual begging tour, he tramped despondently up and
down the region round about Mincing Lane and Little East Cheap, hour after
hour, bare-footed and cold, looking in at cook-shop windows and longing
for the dreadful pork-pies and other deadly inventions displayed there—for
to him these were dainties fit for the angels; that is, judging by the
smell, they were—for it had never been his good luck to own and eat
one. There was a cold drizzle of rain; the atmosphere was murky; it was a
melancholy day. At night Tom reached home so wet and tired and
hungry that it was not possible for his father and grandmother to observe
his forlorn condition and not be moved—after their fashion;
wherefore they gave him a brisk cuffing at once and sent him to bed.
For a long time his pain and hunger, and the swearing and fighting
going on in the building, kept him awake; but at last his thoughts drifted
away to far, romantic lands, and he fell asleep in the company of jewelled
and gilded princelings who live in vast palaces, and had servants
salaaming before them or flying to execute their orders. And then,
as usual, he dreamed that <i>he</i> was a princeling himself.</p>
<p>All night long the glories of his royal estate shone upon him; he moved
among great lords and ladies, in a blaze of light, breathing perfumes,
drinking in delicious music, and answering the reverent obeisances of the
glittering throng as it parted to make way for him, with here a smile, and
there a nod of his princely head.</p>
<p>And when he awoke in the morning and looked upon the wretchedness about
him, his dream had had its usual effect—it had intensified the
sordidness of his surroundings a thousandfold. Then came bitterness,
and heart-break, and tears.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c3" id="c3"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link03-035" id="link03-035"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link03-035.jpg (77K)" src="images/03-035.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link03-037" id="link03-037"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link03-037.jpg (143K)" src="images/03-037.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter III. Tom’s meeting with the Prince.</p>
<p>Tom got up hungry, and sauntered hungry away, but with his thoughts busy
with the shadowy splendours of his night’s dreams. He wandered here
and there in the city, hardly noticing where he was going, or what was
happening around him. People jostled him, and some gave him rough
speech; but it was all lost on the musing boy. By-and-by he found
himself at Temple Bar, the farthest from home he had ever travelled in
that direction. He stopped and considered a moment, then fell into
his imaginings again, and passed on outside the walls of London. The
Strand had ceased to be a country-road then, and regarded itself as a
street, but by a strained construction; for, though there was a tolerably
compact row of houses on one side of it, there were only some scattered
great buildings on the other, these being palaces of rich nobles, with
ample and beautiful grounds stretching to the river—grounds that are
now closely packed with grim acres of brick and stone.</p>
<p>Tom discovered Charing Village presently, and rested himself at the
beautiful cross built there by a bereaved king of earlier days; then idled
down a quiet, lovely road, past the great cardinal’s stately palace,
toward a far more mighty and majestic palace beyond—Westminster. Tom
stared in glad wonder at the vast pile of masonry, the wide-spreading
wings, the frowning bastions and turrets, the huge stone gateway, with its
gilded bars and its magnificent array of colossal granite lions, and other
the signs and symbols of English royalty. Was the desire of his soul
to be satisfied at last? Here, indeed, was a king’s palace.
Might he not hope to see a prince now—a prince of flesh and
blood, if Heaven were willing?</p>
<p>At each side of the gilded gate stood a living statue—that is to
say, an erect and stately and motionless man-at-arms, clad from head to
heel in shining steel armour. At a respectful distance were many
country folk, and people from the city, waiting for any chance glimpse of
royalty that might offer. Splendid carriages, with splendid people
in them and splendid servants outside, were arriving and departing by
several other noble gateways that pierced the royal enclosure.</p>
<p>Poor little Tom, in his rags, approached, and was moving slowly and
timidly past the sentinels, with a beating heart and a rising hope, when
all at once he caught sight through the golden bars of a spectacle that
almost made him shout for joy. Within was a comely boy, tanned and
brown with sturdy outdoor sports and exercises, whose clothing was all of
lovely silks and satins, shining with jewels; at his hip a little jewelled
sword and dagger; dainty buskins on his feet, with red heels; and on his
head a jaunty crimson cap, with drooping plumes fastened with a great
sparkling gem. Several gorgeous gentlemen stood near—his
servants, without a doubt. Oh! he was a prince—a prince, a
living prince, a real prince—without the shadow of a question; and
the prayer of the pauper-boy’s heart was answered at last.</p>
<p>Tom’s breath came quick and short with excitement, and his eyes grew
big with wonder and delight. Everything gave way in his mind
instantly to one desire: that was to get close to the prince, and
have a good, devouring look at him. Before he knew what he was
about, he had his face against the gate-bars. The next instant one
of the soldiers snatched him rudely away, and sent him spinning among the
gaping crowd of country gawks and London idlers. The soldier said,—</p>
<p>“Mind thy manners, thou young beggar!”</p>
<p>The crowd jeered and laughed; but the young prince sprang to the gate with
his face flushed, and his eyes flashing with indignation, and cried out,—</p>
<p>“How dar’st thou use a poor lad like that? How dar’st
thou use the King my father’s meanest subject so? Open the
gates, and let him in!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link03-039" id="link03-039"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link03-039.jpg (171K)" src="images/03-039.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>You should have seen that fickle crowd snatch off their hats then. You
should have heard them cheer, and shout, “Long live the Prince of
Wales!”</p>
<p>The soldiers presented arms with their halberds, opened the gates, and
presented again as the little Prince of Poverty passed in, in his
fluttering rags, to join hands with the Prince of Limitless Plenty.</p>
<p>Edward Tudor said—</p>
<p>“Thou lookest tired and hungry: thou’st been treated
ill. Come with me.”</p>
<p>Half a dozen attendants sprang forward to—I don’t know what;
interfere, no doubt. But they were waved aside with a right royal
gesture, and they stopped stock still where they were, like so many
statues. Edward took Tom to a rich apartment in the palace, which he
called his cabinet. By his command a repast was brought such as Tom
had never encountered before except in books. The prince, with
princely delicacy and breeding, sent away the servants, so that his humble
guest might not be embarrassed by their critical presence; then he sat
near by, and asked questions while Tom ate.</p>
<p>“What is thy name, lad?”</p>
<p>“Tom Canty, an’ it please thee, sir.”</p>
<p>“’Tis an odd one. Where dost live?”</p>
<p>“In the city, please thee, sir. Offal Court, out of Pudding
Lane.”</p>
<p>“Offal Court! Truly ’tis another odd one. Hast
parents?”</p>
<p>“Parents have I, sir, and a grand-dam likewise that is but
indifferently precious to me, God forgive me if it be offence to say it—also
twin sisters, Nan and Bet.”</p>
<p>“Then is thy grand-dam not over kind to thee, I take it?”</p>
<p>“Neither to any other is she, so please your worship. She hath
a wicked heart, and worketh evil all her days.”</p>
<p>“Doth she mistreat thee?”</p>
<p>“There be times that she stayeth her hand, being asleep or overcome
with drink; but when she hath her judgment clear again, she maketh it up
to me with goodly beatings.”</p>
<p>A fierce look came into the little prince’s eyes, and he cried out—</p>
<p>“What! Beatings?”</p>
<p>“Oh, indeed, yes, please you, sir.”</p>
<p>“<i>Beatings</i>!—and thou so frail and little. Hark ye:
before the night come, she shall hie her to the Tower. The
King my father”—</p>
<p>“In sooth, you forget, sir, her low degree. The Tower is for
the great alone.”</p>
<p>“True, indeed. I had not thought of that. I will
consider of her punishment. Is thy father kind to thee?”</p>
<p>“Not more than Gammer Canty, sir.”</p>
<p>“Fathers be alike, mayhap. Mine hath not a doll’s
temper. He smiteth with a heavy hand, yet spareth me: he
spareth me not always with his tongue, though, sooth to say. How
doth thy mother use thee?”</p>
<p>“She is good, sir, and giveth me neither sorrow nor pain of any
sort. And Nan and Bet are like to her in this.”</p>
<p>“How old be these?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link03-041" id="link03-041"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link03-041.jpg (85K)" src="images/03-041.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Fifteen, an’ it please you, sir.”</p>
<p>“The Lady Elizabeth, my sister, is fourteen, and the Lady Jane Grey,
my cousin, is of mine own age, and comely and gracious withal; but my
sister the Lady Mary, with her gloomy mien and—Look you: do
thy sisters forbid their servants to smile, lest the sin destroy their
souls?”</p>
<p>“They? Oh, dost think, sir, that <i>they</i> have servants?”</p>
<p>The little prince contemplated the little pauper gravely a moment, then
said—</p>
<p>“And prithee, why not? Who helpeth them undress at night?
Who attireth them when they rise?”</p>
<p>“None, sir. Would’st have them take off their garment,
and sleep without—like the beasts?”</p>
<p>“Their garment! Have they but one?”</p>
<p>“Ah, good your worship, what would they do with more? Truly
they have not two bodies each.”</p>
<p>“It is a quaint and marvellous thought! Thy pardon, I had not
meant to laugh. But thy good Nan and thy Bet shall have raiment and
lackeys enow, and that soon, too: my cofferer shall look to it.
No, thank me not; ’tis nothing. Thou speakest well; thou
hast an easy grace in it. Art learned?”</p>
<p>“I know not if I am or not, sir. The good priest that is
called Father Andrew taught me, of his kindness, from his books.”</p>
<p>“Know’st thou the Latin?”</p>
<p>“But scantly, sir, I doubt.”</p>
<p>“Learn it, lad: ’tis hard only at first. The Greek
is harder; but neither these nor any tongues else, I think, are hard to
the Lady Elizabeth and my cousin. Thou should’st hear those
damsels at it! But tell me of thy Offal Court. Hast thou a
pleasant life there?”</p>
<p>“In truth, yes, so please you, sir, save when one is hungry. There
be Punch-and-Judy shows, and monkeys—oh such antic creatures! and so
bravely dressed!—and there be plays wherein they that play do shout
and fight till all are slain, and ’tis so fine to see, and costeth
but a farthing—albeit ’tis main hard to get the farthing,
please your worship.”</p>
<p>“Tell me more.”</p>
<p>“We lads of Offal Court do strive against each other with the
cudgel, like to the fashion of the ’prentices, sometimes.”</p>
<p>The prince’s eyes flashed. Said he—</p>
<p>“Marry, that would not I mislike. Tell me more.”</p>
<p>“We strive in races, sir, to see who of us shall be fleetest.”</p>
<p>“That would I like also. Speak on.”</p>
<p>“In summer, sir, we wade and swim in the canals and in the river,
and each doth duck his neighbour, and splatter him with water, and dive
and shout and tumble and—”</p>
<p>“’Twould be worth my father’s kingdom but to enjoy it
once! Prithee go on.”</p>
<p>“We dance and sing about the Maypole in Cheapside; we play in the
sand, each covering his neighbour up; and times we make mud pastry—oh
the lovely mud, it hath not its like for delightfulness in all the world!—we
do fairly wallow in the mud, sir, saving your worship’s presence.”</p>
<p>“Oh, prithee, say no more, ’tis glorious! If that I
could but clothe me in raiment like to thine, and strip my feet, and revel
in the mud once, just once, with none to rebuke me or forbid, meseemeth I
could forego the crown!”</p>
<p>“And if that I could clothe me once, sweet sir, as thou art clad—just
once—”</p>
<p>“Oho, would’st like it? Then so shall it be. Doff
thy rags, and don these splendours, lad! It is a brief happiness,
but will be not less keen for that. We will have it while we may,
and change again before any come to molest.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link03-043" id="link03-043"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link03-043.jpg (201K)" src="images/03-043.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>A few minutes later the little Prince of Wales was garlanded with Tom’s
fluttering odds and ends, and the little Prince of Pauperdom was tricked
out in the gaudy plumage of royalty. The two went and stood side by
side before a great mirror, and lo, a miracle: there did not seem to have
been any change made! They stared at each other, then at the glass,
then at each other again. At last the puzzled princeling said—</p>
<p>“What dost thou make of this?”</p>
<p>“Ah, good your worship, require me not to answer. It is not
meet that one of my degree should utter the thing.”</p>
<p>“Then will <i>I</i> utter it. Thou hast the same hair, the
same eyes, the same voice and manner, the same form and stature, the same
face and countenance that I bear. Fared we forth naked, there is
none could say which was you, and which the Prince of Wales. And,
now that I am clothed as thou wert clothed, it seemeth I should be able
the more nearly to feel as thou didst when the brute soldier—Hark
ye, is not this a bruise upon your hand?”</p>
<p>“Yes; but it is a slight thing, and your worship knoweth that the
poor man-at-arms—”</p>
<p>“Peace! It was a shameful thing and a cruel!” cried the
little prince, stamping his bare foot. "If the King—Stir not a
step till I come again! It is a command!”</p>
<p>In a moment he had snatched up and put away an article of national
importance that lay upon a table, and was out at the door and flying
through the palace grounds in his bannered rags, with a hot face and
glowing eyes. As soon as he reached the great gate, he seized the
bars, and tried to shake them, shouting—</p>
<p>“Open! Unbar the gates!”</p>
<p>The soldier that had maltreated Tom obeyed promptly; and as the prince
burst through the portal, half-smothered with royal wrath, the soldier
fetched him a sounding box on the ear that sent him whirling to the
roadway, and said—</p>
<p>“Take that, thou beggar’s spawn, for what thou got’st me
from his Highness!”</p>
<p>The crowd roared with laughter. The prince picked himself out of the
mud, and made fiercely at the sentry, shouting—</p>
<p>“I am the Prince of Wales, my person is sacred; and thou shalt hang
for laying thy hand upon me!”</p>
<p>The soldier brought his halberd to a present-arms and said mockingly—</p>
<p>“I salute your gracious Highness.” Then angrily—“Be
off, thou crazy rubbish!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link03-046" id="link03-046"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link03-046.jpg (154K)" src="images/03-046.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Here the jeering crowd closed round the poor little prince, and hustled
him far down the road, hooting him, and shouting—</p>
<p>“Way for his Royal Highness! Way for the Prince of Wales!”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c4" id="c4"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link04-047" id="link04-047"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link04-047.jpg (47K)" src="images/04-047.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter IV. The Prince’s troubles begin.</p>
<p>After hours of persistent pursuit and persecution, the little prince was
at last deserted by the rabble and left to himself. As long as he
had been able to rage against the mob, and threaten it royally, and
royally utter commands that were good stuff to laugh at, he was very
entertaining; but when weariness finally forced him to be silent, he was
no longer of use to his tormentors, and they sought amusement elsewhere.
He looked about him, now, but could not recognise the locality. He
was within the city of London—that was all he knew. He moved
on, aimlessly, and in a little while the houses thinned, and the
passers-by were infrequent. He bathed his bleeding feet in the brook
which flowed then where Farringdon Street now is; rested a few moments,
then passed on, and presently came upon a great space with only a few
scattered houses in it, and a prodigious church. He recognised this
church. Scaffoldings were about, everywhere, and swarms of workmen;
for it was undergoing elaborate repairs. The prince took heart at
once—he felt that his troubles were at an end, now. He said to
himself, “It is the ancient Grey Friars’ Church, which the
king my father hath taken from the monks and given for a home for ever for
poor and forsaken children, and new-named it Christ’s Church. Right
gladly will they serve the son of him who hath done so generously by them—and
the more that that son is himself as poor and as forlorn as any that be
sheltered here this day, or ever shall be.”</p>
<p>He was soon in the midst of a crowd of boys who were running, jumping,
playing at ball and leap-frog, and otherwise disporting themselves, and
right noisily, too. They were all dressed alike, and in the fashion
which in that day prevailed among serving-men and ’prentices{1}—that
is to say, each had on the crown of his head a flat black cap about the
size of a saucer, which was not useful as a covering, it being of such
scanty dimensions, neither was it ornamental; from beneath it the hair
fell, unparted, to the middle of the forehead, and was cropped straight
around; a clerical band at the neck; a blue gown that fitted closely and
hung as low as the knees or lower; full sleeves; a broad red belt; bright
yellow stockings, gartered above the knees; low shoes with large metal
buckles. It was a sufficiently ugly costume.</p>
<p>The boys stopped their play and flocked about the prince, who said with
native dignity—</p>
<p>“Good lads, say to your master that Edward Prince of Wales desireth
speech with him.”</p>
<p>A great shout went up at this, and one rude fellow said—</p>
<p>“Marry, art thou his grace’s messenger, beggar?”</p>
<p>The prince’s face flushed with anger, and his ready hand flew to his
hip, but there was nothing there. There was a storm of laughter, and
one boy said—</p>
<p>“Didst mark that? He fancied he had a sword—belike he is
the prince himself.”</p>
<p>This sally brought more laughter. Poor Edward drew himself up
proudly and said—</p>
<p>“I am the prince; and it ill beseemeth you that feed upon the king
my father’s bounty to use me so.”</p>
<p>This was vastly enjoyed, as the laughter testified. The youth who
had first spoken, shouted to his comrades—</p>
<p>“Ho, swine, slaves, pensioners of his grace’s princely father,
where be your manners? Down on your marrow bones, all of ye, and do
reverence to his kingly port and royal rags!”</p>
<p>With boisterous mirth they dropped upon their knees in a body and did mock
homage to their prey. The prince spurned the nearest boy with his
foot, and said fiercely—</p>
<p>“Take thou that, till the morrow come and I build thee a gibbet!”</p>
<p>Ah, but this was not a joke—this was going beyond fun. The
laughter ceased on the instant, and fury took its place. A dozen
shouted—</p>
<p>“Hale him forth! To the horse-pond, to the horse-pond! Where
be the dogs? Ho, there, Lion! ho, Fangs!”</p>
<p>Then followed such a thing as England had never seen before—the
sacred person of the heir to the throne rudely buffeted by plebeian hands,
and set upon and torn by dogs.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link04-050" id="link04-050"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link04-050.jpg (84K)" src="images/04-050.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>As night drew to a close that day, the prince found himself far down in
the close-built portion of the city. His body was bruised, his hands
were bleeding, and his rags were all besmirched with mud. He
wandered on and on, and grew more and more bewildered, and so tired and
faint he could hardly drag one foot after the other. He had ceased
to ask questions of anyone, since they brought him only insult instead of
information. He kept muttering to himself, “Offal Court—that
is the name; if I can but find it before my strength is wholly spent and I
drop, then am I saved—for his people will take me to the palace and
prove that I am none of theirs, but the true prince, and I shall have mine
own again.” And now and then his mind reverted to his
treatment by those rude Christ’s Hospital boys, and he said, “When
I am king, they shall not have bread and shelter only, but also teachings
out of books; for a full belly is little worth where the mind is starved,
and the heart. I will keep this diligently in my remembrance, that
this day’s lesson be not lost upon me, and my people suffer thereby;
for learning softeneth the heart and breedeth gentleness and charity.”
{1}</p>
<p>The lights began to twinkle, it came on to rain, the wind rose, and a raw
and gusty night set in. The houseless prince, the homeless heir to
the throne of England, still moved on, drifting deeper into the maze of
squalid alleys where the swarming hives of poverty and misery were massed
together.</p>
<p>Suddenly a great drunken ruffian collared him and said—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link04-052" id="link04-052"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link04-052.jpg (80K)" src="images/04-052.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Out to this time of night again, and hast not brought a farthing
home, I warrant me! If it be so, an’ I do not break all the
bones in thy lean body, then am I not John Canty, but some other.”</p>
<p>The prince twisted himself loose, unconsciously brushed his profaned
shoulder, and eagerly said—</p>
<p>“Oh, art <i>his</i> father, truly? Sweet heaven grant it be so—then
wilt thou fetch him away and restore me!”</p>
<p>“<i>His</i> father? I know not what thou mean’st; I but
know I am <i>thy</i> father, as thou shalt soon have cause to—”</p>
<p>“Oh, jest not, palter not, delay not!—I am worn, I am wounded,
I can bear no more. Take me to the king my father, and he will make
thee rich beyond thy wildest dreams. Believe me, man, believe me!—I
speak no lie, but only the truth!—put forth thy hand and save me!
I am indeed the Prince of Wales!”</p>
<p>The man stared down, stupefied, upon the lad, then shook his head and
muttered—</p>
<p>“Gone stark mad as any Tom o’ Bedlam!”—then
collared him once more, and said with a coarse laugh and an oath, “But
mad or no mad, I and thy Gammer Canty will soon find where the soft places
in thy bones lie, or I’m no true man!”</p>
<p>With this he dragged the frantic and struggling prince away, and
disappeared up a front court followed by a delighted and noisy swarm of
human vermin.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c5" id="c5"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link05-055" id="link05-055"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-055.jpg (73K)" src="images/05-055.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link05-057" id="link05-057"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-057.jpg (129K)" src="images/05-057.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter V. Tom as a Patrician.</p>
<p>Tom Canty, left alone in the prince’s cabinet, made good use of his
opportunity. He turned himself this way and that before the great
mirror, admiring his finery; then walked away, imitating the prince’s
high-bred carriage, and still observing results in the glass. Next
he drew the beautiful sword, and bowed, kissing the blade, and laying it
across his breast, as he had seen a noble knight do, by way of salute to
the lieutenant of the Tower, five or six weeks before, when delivering the
great lords of Norfolk and Surrey into his hands for captivity. Tom
played with the jewelled dagger that hung upon his thigh; he examined the
costly and exquisite ornaments of the room; he tried each of the sumptuous
chairs, and thought how proud he would be if the Offal Court herd could
only peep in and see him in his grandeur. He wondered if they would
believe the marvellous tale he should tell when he got home, or if they
would shake their heads, and say his overtaxed imagination had at last
upset his reason.</p>
<p>At the end of half an hour it suddenly occurred to him that the prince was
gone a long time; then right away he began to feel lonely; very soon he
fell to listening and longing, and ceased to toy with the pretty things
about him; he grew uneasy, then restless, then distressed. Suppose some
one should come, and catch him in the prince’s clothes, and the
prince not there to explain. Might they not hang him at once, and
inquire into his case afterward? He had heard that the great were
prompt about small matters. His fear rose higher and higher; and
trembling he softly opened the door to the antechamber, resolved to fly
and seek the prince, and, through him, protection and release. Six
gorgeous gentlemen-servants and two young pages of high degree, clothed
like butterflies, sprang to their feet and bowed low before him. He
stepped quickly back and shut the door. He said—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-058" id="link05-058"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-058.jpg (138K)" src="images/05-058.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Oh, they mock at me! They will go and tell. Oh! why
came I here to cast away my life?”</p>
<p>He walked up and down the floor, filled with nameless fears, listening,
starting at every trifling sound. Presently the door swung open, and
a silken page said—</p>
<p>“The Lady Jane Grey.”</p>
<p>The door closed and a sweet young girl, richly clad, bounded toward him.
But she stopped suddenly, and said in a distressed voice—</p>
<p>“Oh, what aileth thee, my lord?”</p>
<p>Tom’s breath was nearly failing him; but he made shift to stammer
out—</p>
<p>“Ah, be merciful, thou! In sooth I am no lord, but only poor
Tom Canty of Offal Court in the city. Prithee let me see the prince,
and he will of his grace restore to me my rags, and let me hence unhurt.
Oh, be thou merciful, and save me!”</p>
<p>By this time the boy was on his knees, and supplicating with his eyes and
uplifted hands as well as with his tongue. The young girl seemed
horror-stricken. She cried out—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-059" id="link05-059"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-059.jpg (104K)" src="images/05-059.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“O my lord, on thy knees?—and to <i>me</i>!”</p>
<p>Then she fled away in fright; and Tom, smitten with despair, sank down,
murmuring—</p>
<p>“There is no help, there is no hope. Now will they come and
take me.”</p>
<p>Whilst he lay there benumbed with terror, dreadful tidings were speeding
through the palace. The whisper—for it was whispered always—flew
from menial to menial, from lord to lady, down all the long corridors,
from story to story, from saloon to saloon, “The prince hath gone
mad, the prince hath gone mad!” Soon every saloon, every
marble hall, had its groups of glittering lords and ladies, and other
groups of dazzling lesser folk, talking earnestly together in whispers,
and every face had in it dismay. Presently a splendid official came
marching by these groups, making solemn proclamation—</p>
<p>“IN THE NAME OF THE KING!</p>
<p>Let none list to this false and foolish matter, upon pain of death, nor
discuss the same, nor carry it abroad. In the name of the King!”</p>
<p>The whisperings ceased as suddenly as if the whisperers had been stricken
dumb.</p>
<p>Soon there was a general buzz along the corridors, of “The prince!
See, the prince comes!”</p>
<p>Poor Tom came slowly walking past the low-bowing groups, trying to bow in
return, and meekly gazing upon his strange surroundings with bewildered
and pathetic eyes. Great nobles walked upon each side of him, making
him lean upon them, and so steady his steps. Behind him followed the
court-physicians and some servants.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-061" id="link05-061"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-061.jpg (144K)" src="images/05-061.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Presently Tom found himself in a noble apartment of the palace and heard
the door close behind him. Around him stood those who had come with
him. Before him, at a little distance, reclined a very large and very fat
man, with a wide, pulpy face, and a stern expression. His large head
was very grey; and his whiskers, which he wore only around his face, like
a frame, were grey also. His clothing was of rich stuff, but old,
and slightly frayed in places. One of his swollen legs had a pillow
under it, and was wrapped in bandages. There was silence now; and
there was no head there but was bent in reverence, except this man’s.
This stern-countenanced invalid was the dread Henry VIII. He
said—and his face grew gentle as he began to speak—</p>
<p>“How now, my lord Edward, my prince? Hast been minded to cozen
me, the good King thy father, who loveth thee, and kindly useth thee, with
a sorry jest?”</p>
<p>Poor Tom was listening, as well as his dazed faculties would let him, to
the beginning of this speech; but when the words ‘me, the good King’
fell upon his ear, his face blanched, and he dropped as instantly upon his
knees as if a shot had brought him there. Lifting up his hands, he
exclaimed—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-062" id="link05-062"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-062.jpg (111K)" src="images/05-062.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Thou the <i>King</i>? Then am I undone indeed!”</p>
<p>This speech seemed to stun the King. His eyes wandered from face to
face aimlessly, then rested, bewildered, upon the boy before him. Then
he said in a tone of deep disappointment—</p>
<p>“Alack, I had believed the rumour disproportioned to the truth; but
I fear me ’tis not so.” He breathed a heavy sigh, and
said in a gentle voice, “Come to thy father, child: thou art
not well.”</p>
<p>Tom was assisted to his feet, and approached the Majesty of England,
humble and trembling. The King took the frightened face between his
hands, and gazed earnestly and lovingly into it awhile, as if seeking some
grateful sign of returning reason there, then pressed the curly head
against his breast, and patted it tenderly. Presently he said—</p>
<p>“Dost not know thy father, child? Break not mine old heart;
say thou know’st me. Thou <i>dost</i> know me, dost thou not?”</p>
<p>“Yea: thou art my dread lord the King, whom God preserve!”</p>
<p>“True, true—that is well—be comforted, tremble not so;
there is none here would hurt thee; there is none here but loves thee.
Thou art better now; thy ill dream passeth—is’t not so? Thou
wilt not miscall thyself again, as they say thou didst a little while
agone?”</p>
<p>“I pray thee of thy grace believe me, I did but speak the truth,
most dread lord; for I am the meanest among thy subjects, being a pauper
born, and ’tis by a sore mischance and accident I am here, albeit I
was therein nothing blameful. I am but young to die, and thou canst
save me with one little word. Oh speak it, sir!”</p>
<p>“Die? Talk not so, sweet prince—peace, peace, to thy
troubled heart—thou shalt not die!”</p>
<p>Tom dropped upon his knees with a glad cry—</p>
<p>“God requite thy mercy, O my King, and save thee long to bless thy
land!” Then springing up, he turned a joyful face toward the two
lords in waiting, and exclaimed, “Thou heard’st it! I am
not to die: the King hath said it!” There was no
movement, save that all bowed with grave respect; but no one spoke. He
hesitated, a little confused, then turned timidly toward the King, saying,
“I may go now?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-064" id="link05-064"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-064.jpg (126K)" src="images/05-064.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Go? Surely, if thou desirest. But why not tarry yet a
little? Whither would’st go?”</p>
<p>Tom dropped his eyes, and answered humbly—</p>
<p>“Peradventure I mistook; but I did think me free, and so was I moved
to seek again the kennel where I was born and bred to misery, yet which
harboureth my mother and my sisters, and so is home to me; whereas these
pomps and splendours whereunto I am not used—oh, please you, sir, to
let me go!”</p>
<p>The King was silent and thoughtful a while, and his face betrayed a
growing distress and uneasiness. Presently he said, with something
of hope in his voice—</p>
<p>“Perchance he is but mad upon this one strain, and hath his wits
unmarred as toucheth other matter. God send it may be so! We
will make trial.”</p>
<p>Then he asked Tom a question in Latin, and Tom answered him lamely in the
same tongue. The lords and doctors manifested their gratification
also. The King said—</p>
<p>“’Twas not according to his schooling and ability, but showeth
that his mind is but diseased, not stricken fatally. How say you,
sir?”</p>
<p>The physician addressed bowed low, and replied—</p>
<p>“It jumpeth with my own conviction, sire, that thou hast divined
aright.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-065" id="link05-065"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-065.jpg (123K)" src="images/05-065.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King looked pleased with this encouragement, coming as it did from so
excellent authority, and continued with good heart—</p>
<p>“Now mark ye all: we will try him further.”</p>
<p>He put a question to Tom in French. Tom stood silent a moment,
embarrassed by having so many eyes centred upon him, then said diffidently—</p>
<p>“I have no knowledge of this tongue, so please your majesty.”</p>
<p>The King fell back upon his couch. The attendants flew to his
assistance; but he put them aside, and said—</p>
<p>“Trouble me not—it is nothing but a scurvy faintness. Raise
me! There, ’tis sufficient. Come hither, child; there, rest
thy poor troubled head upon thy father’s heart, and be at peace.
Thou’lt soon be well: ’tis but a passing fantasy.
Fear thou not; thou’lt soon be well.” Then he
turned toward the company: his gentle manner changed, and baleful
lightnings began to play from his eyes. He said—</p>
<p>“List ye all! This my son is mad; but it is not permanent.
Over-study hath done this, and somewhat too much of confinement.
Away with his books and teachers! see ye to it. Pleasure him
with sports, beguile him in wholesome ways, so that his health come again.”
He raised himself higher still, and went on with energy, “He
is mad; but he is my son, and England’s heir; and, mad or sane,
still shall he reign! And hear ye further, and proclaim it: whoso
speaketh of this his distemper worketh against the peace and order of
these realms, and shall to the gallows! . . . Give me to drink—I
burn: this sorrow sappeth my strength. . . . There, take away the
cup. . . . Support me. There, that is well. Mad, is he? Were
he a thousand times mad, yet is he Prince of Wales, and I the King will
confirm it. This very morrow shall he be installed in his princely
dignity in due and ancient form. Take instant order for it, my lord
Hertford.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-067" id="link05-067"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-067.jpg (162K)" src="images/05-067.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>One of the nobles knelt at the royal couch, and said—</p>
<p>“The King’s majesty knoweth that the Hereditary Great Marshal
of England lieth attainted in the Tower. It were not meet that one
attainted—”</p>
<p>“Peace! Insult not mine ears with his hated name. Is
this man to live for ever? Am I to be baulked of my will? Is
the prince to tarry uninstalled, because, forsooth, the realm lacketh an
Earl Marshal free of treasonable taint to invest him with his honours? No,
by the splendour of God! Warn my Parliament to bring me Norfolk’s
doom before the sun rise again, else shall they answer for it grievously!”
{1}</p>
<p>Lord Hertford said—</p>
<p>“The King’s will is law;” and, rising, returned to his
former place.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link05-068" id="link05-068"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link05-068.jpg (114K)" src="images/05-068.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Gradually the wrath faded out of the old King’s face, and he said—</p>
<p>“Kiss me, my prince. There . . . what fearest thou? Am I
not thy loving father?”</p>
<p>“Thou art good to me that am unworthy, O mighty and gracious lord:
that in truth I know. But—but—it grieveth me to think of
him that is to die, and—”</p>
<p>“Ah, ’tis like thee, ’tis like thee! I know thy
heart is still the same, even though thy mind hath suffered hurt, for thou
wert ever of a gentle spirit. But this duke standeth between thee
and thine honours: I will have another in his stead that shall bring
no taint to his great office. Comfort thee, my prince: trouble not
thy poor head with this matter.”</p>
<p>“But is it not I that speed him hence, my liege? How long
might he not live, but for me?”</p>
<p>“Take no thought of him, my prince: he is not worthy. Kiss
me once again, and go to thy trifles and amusements; for my malady
distresseth me. I am aweary, and would rest. Go with thine
uncle Hertford and thy people, and come again when my body is refreshed.”</p>
<p>Tom, heavy-hearted, was conducted from the presence, for this last
sentence was a death-blow to the hope he had cherished that now he would
be set free. Once more he heard the buzz of low voices exclaiming,
“The prince, the prince comes!”</p>
<p>His spirits sank lower and lower as he moved between the glittering files
of bowing courtiers; for he recognised that he was indeed a captive now,
and might remain for ever shut up in this gilded cage, a forlorn and
friendless prince, except God in his mercy take pity on him and set him
free.</p>
<p>And, turn where he would, he seemed to see floating in the air the severed
head and the remembered face of the great Duke of Norfolk, the eyes fixed
on him reproachfully.</p>
<p>His old dreams had been so pleasant; but this reality was so dreary!</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c6" id="c6"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link06-071" id="link06-071"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-071.jpg (65K)" src="images/06-071.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link06-073" id="link06-073"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-073.jpg (136K)" src="images/06-073.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter VI. Tom receives instructions.</p>
<p>Tom was conducted to the principal apartment of a noble suite, and made to
sit down—a thing which he was loth to do, since there were elderly
men and men of high degree about him. He begged them to be seated
also, but they only bowed their thanks or murmured them, and remained
standing. He would have insisted, but his ‘uncle’ the Earl of
Hertford whispered in his ear—</p>
<p>“Prithee, insist not, my lord; it is not meet that they sit in thy
presence.”</p>
<p>The Lord St. John was announced, and after making obeisance to Tom, he
said—</p>
<p>“I come upon the King’s errand, concerning a matter which
requireth privacy. Will it please your royal highness to dismiss all
that attend you here, save my lord the Earl of Hertford?”</p>
<p>Observing that Tom did not seem to know how to proceed, Hertford whispered
him to make a sign with his hand, and not trouble himself to speak unless
he chose. When the waiting gentlemen had retired, Lord St. John said—</p>
<p>“His majesty commandeth, that for due and weighty reasons of state,
the prince’s grace shall hide his infirmity in all ways that be
within his power, till it be passed and he be as he was before. To
wit, that he shall deny to none that he is the true prince, and heir to
England’s greatness; that he shall uphold his princely dignity, and
shall receive, without word or sign of protest, that reverence and
observance which unto it do appertain of right and ancient usage; that he
shall cease to speak to any of that lowly birth and life his malady hath
conjured out of the unwholesome imaginings of o’er-wrought fancy;
that he shall strive with diligence to bring unto his memory again those
faces which he was wont to know—and where he faileth he shall hold
his peace, neither betraying by semblance of surprise or other sign that
he hath forgot; that upon occasions of state, whensoever any matter shall
perplex him as to the thing he should do or the utterance he should make,
he shall show nought of unrest to the curious that look on, but take
advice in that matter of the Lord Hertford, or my humble self, which are
commanded of the King to be upon this service and close at call, till this
commandment be dissolved. Thus saith the King’s majesty, who sendeth
greeting to your royal highness, and prayeth that God will of His mercy
quickly heal you and have you now and ever in His holy keeping.”</p>
<p>The Lord St. John made reverence and stood aside. Tom replied
resignedly—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-075" id="link06-075"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-075.jpg (97K)" src="images/06-075.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“The King hath said it. None may palter with the King’s
command, or fit it to his ease, where it doth chafe, with deft evasions.
The King shall be obeyed.”</p>
<p>Lord Hertford said—</p>
<p>“Touching the King’s majesty’s ordainment concerning
books and such like serious matters, it may peradventure please your
highness to ease your time with lightsome entertainment, lest you go
wearied to the banquet and suffer harm thereby.”</p>
<p>Tom’s face showed inquiring surprise; and a blush followed when he
saw Lord St. John’s eyes bent sorrowfully upon him. His
lordship said—</p>
<p>“Thy memory still wrongeth thee, and thou hast shown surprise—but
suffer it not to trouble thee, for ’tis a matter that will not bide,
but depart with thy mending malady. My Lord of Hertford speaketh of
the city’s banquet which the King’s majesty did promise, some
two months flown, your highness should attend. Thou recallest it
now?”</p>
<p>“It grieves me to confess it had indeed escaped me,” said Tom,
in a hesitating voice; and blushed again.</p>
<p>At this moment the Lady Elizabeth and the Lady Jane Grey were announced.
The two lords exchanged significant glances, and Hertford stepped quickly
toward the door. As the young girls passed him, he said in a low
voice—</p>
<p>“I pray ye, ladies, seem not to observe his humours, nor show
surprise when his memory doth lapse—it will grieve you to note how
it doth stick at every trifle.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-077" id="link06-077"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-077.jpg (101K)" src="images/06-077.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Meantime Lord St. John was saying in Tom’s ear—</p>
<p>“Please you, sir, keep diligently in mind his majesty’s
desire. Remember all thou canst—<i>seem</i> to remember all else.
Let them not perceive that thou art much changed from thy wont, for
thou knowest how tenderly thy old play-fellows bear thee in their hearts
and how ’twould grieve them. Art willing, sir, that I remain?—and
thine uncle?”</p>
<p>Tom signified assent with a gesture and a murmured word, for he was
already learning, and in his simple heart was resolved to acquit himself
as best he might, according to the King’s command.</p>
<p>In spite of every precaution, the conversation among the young people
became a little embarrassing at times. More than once, in truth, Tom
was near to breaking down and confessing himself unequal to his tremendous
part; but the tact of the Princess Elizabeth saved him, or a word from one
or the other of the vigilant lords, thrown in apparently by chance, had
the same happy effect. Once the little Lady Jane turned to Tom and
dismayed him with this question,—</p>
<p>“Hast paid thy duty to the Queen’s majesty to-day, my lord?”</p>
<p>Tom hesitated, looked distressed, and was about to stammer out something
at hazard, when Lord St. John took the word and answered for him with the
easy grace of a courtier accustomed to encounter delicate difficulties and
to be ready for them—</p>
<p>“He hath indeed, madam, and she did greatly hearten him, as touching
his majesty’s condition; is it not so, your highness?”</p>
<p>Tom mumbled something that stood for assent, but felt that he was getting
upon dangerous ground. Somewhat later it was mentioned that Tom was
to study no more at present, whereupon her little ladyship exclaimed—</p>
<p>“’Tis a pity, ’tis a pity! Thou wert proceeding
bravely. But bide thy time in patience: it will not be for
long. Thou’lt yet be graced with learning like thy father, and
make thy tongue master of as many languages as his, good my prince.”</p>
<p>“My father!” cried Tom, off his guard for the moment. "I
trow he cannot speak his own so that any but the swine that kennel in the
styes may tell his meaning; and as for learning of any sort soever—”</p>
<p>He looked up and encountered a solemn warning in my Lord St. John’s
eyes.</p>
<p>He stopped, blushed, then continued low and sadly: “Ah, my malady
persecuteth me again, and my mind wandereth. I meant the King’s
grace no irreverence.”</p>
<p>“We know it, sir,” said the Princess Elizabeth, taking her
‘brother’s’ hand between her two palms, respectfully but
caressingly; “trouble not thyself as to that. The fault is
none of thine, but thy distemper’s.”</p>
<p>“Thou’rt a gentle comforter, sweet lady,” said Tom,
gratefully, “and my heart moveth me to thank thee for’t, an’
I may be so bold.”</p>
<p>Once the giddy little Lady Jane fired a simple Greek phrase at Tom. The
Princess Elizabeth’s quick eye saw by the serene blankness of the
target’s front that the shaft was overshot; so she tranquilly
delivered a return volley of sounding Greek on Tom’s behalf, and
then straightway changed the talk to other matters.</p>
<p>Time wore on pleasantly, and likewise smoothly, on the whole. Snags and
sandbars grew less and less frequent, and Tom grew more and more at his
ease, seeing that all were so lovingly bent upon helping him and
overlooking his mistakes. When it came out that the little ladies
were to accompany him to the Lord Mayor’s banquet in the evening,
his heart gave a bound of relief and delight, for he felt that he should
not be friendless, now, among that multitude of strangers; whereas, an
hour earlier, the idea of their going with him would have been an
insupportable terror to him.</p>
<p>Tom’s guardian angels, the two lords, had had less comfort in the
interview than the other parties to it. They felt much as if they
were piloting a great ship through a dangerous channel; they were on the
alert constantly, and found their office no child’s play. Wherefore,
at last, when the ladies’ visit was drawing to a close and the Lord
Guilford Dudley was announced, they not only felt that their charge had
been sufficiently taxed for the present, but also that they themselves
were not in the best condition to take their ship back and make their
anxious voyage all over again. So they respectfully advised Tom to
excuse himself, which he was very glad to do, although a slight shade of
disappointment might have been observed upon my Lady Jane’s face
when she heard the splendid stripling denied admittance.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-079" id="link06-079"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-079.jpg (89K)" src="images/06-079.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>There was a pause now, a sort of waiting silence which Tom could not
understand. He glanced at Lord Hertford, who gave him a sign—but
he failed to understand that also. The ready Elizabeth came to the
rescue with her usual easy grace. She made reverence and said—</p>
<p>“Have we leave of the prince’s grace my brother to go?”</p>
<p>Tom said—</p>
<p>“Indeed your ladyships can have whatsoever of me they will, for the
asking; yet would I rather give them any other thing that in my poor power
lieth, than leave to take the light and blessing of their presence hence.
Give ye good den, and God be with ye!” Then he smiled inwardly
at the thought, “’Tis not for nought I have dwelt but among
princes in my reading, and taught my tongue some slight trick of their
broidered and gracious speech withal!”</p>
<p>When the illustrious maidens were gone, Tom turned wearily to his keepers
and said—</p>
<p>“May it please your lordships to grant me leave to go into some
corner and rest me?”</p>
<p>Lord Hertford said—</p>
<p>“So please your highness, it is for you to command, it is for us to
obey. That thou should’st rest is indeed a needful thing, since thou
must journey to the city presently.”</p>
<p>He touched a bell, and a page appeared, who was ordered to desire the
presence of Sir William Herbert. This gentleman came straightway,
and conducted Tom to an inner apartment. Tom’s first movement
there was to reach for a cup of water; but a silk-and-velvet servitor
seized it, dropped upon one knee, and offered it to him on a golden
salver.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-080" id="link06-080"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-080.jpg (154K)" src="images/06-080.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Next the tired captive sat down and was going to take off his buskins,
timidly asking leave with his eye, but another silk-and-velvet
discomforter went down upon his knees and took the office from him. He
made two or three further efforts to help himself, but being promptly
forestalled each time, he finally gave up, with a sigh of resignation and
a murmured “Beshrew me, but I marvel they do not require to breathe
for me also!” Slippered, and wrapped in a sumptuous robe, he
laid himself down at last to rest, but not to sleep, for his head was too
full of thoughts and the room too full of people. He could not
dismiss the former, so they stayed; he did not know enough to dismiss the
latter, so they stayed also, to his vast regret—and theirs.</p>
<p>Tom’s departure had left his two noble guardians alone. They
mused a while, with much head-shaking and walking the floor, then Lord St.
John said—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-082" id="link06-082"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-082.jpg (83K)" src="images/06-082.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Plainly, what dost thou think?”</p>
<p>“Plainly, then, this. The King is near his end; my nephew is
mad—mad will mount the throne, and mad remain. God protect
England, since she will need it!”</p>
<p>“Verily it promiseth so, indeed. But . . . have you no
misgivings as to . . . as to . . .”</p>
<p>The speaker hesitated, and finally stopped. He evidently felt that
he was upon delicate ground. Lord Hertford stopped before him,
looked into his face with a clear, frank eye, and said—</p>
<p>“Speak on—there is none to hear but me. Misgivings as to
what?”</p>
<p>“I am full loth to word the thing that is in my mind, and thou so
near to him in blood, my lord. But craving pardon if I do offend,
seemeth it not strange that madness could so change his port and manner?—not
but that his port and speech are princely still, but that they <i>differ</i>,
in one unweighty trifle or another, from what his custom was aforetime.
Seemeth it not strange that madness should filch from his memory his
father’s very lineaments; the customs and observances that are his
due from such as be about him; and, leaving him his Latin, strip him of
his Greek and French? My lord, be not offended, but ease my mind of
its disquiet and receive my grateful thanks. It haunteth me, his
saying he was not the prince, and so—”</p>
<p>“Peace, my lord, thou utterest treason! Hast forgot the King’s
command? Remember I am party to thy crime if I but listen.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-083" id="link06-083"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-083.jpg (108K)" src="images/06-083.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>St. John paled, and hastened to say—</p>
<p>“I was in fault, I do confess it. Betray me not, grant me this
grace out of thy courtesy, and I will neither think nor speak of this
thing more. Deal not hardly with me, sir, else am I ruined.”</p>
<p>“I am content, my lord. So thou offend not again, here or in
the ears of others, it shall be as though thou hadst not spoken. But
thou need’st not have misgivings. He is my sister’s son;
are not his voice, his face, his form, familiar to me from his cradle?
Madness can do all the odd conflicting things thou seest in him, and more.
Dost not recall how that the old Baron Marley, being mad, forgot the
favour of his own countenance that he had known for sixty years, and held
it was another’s; nay, even claimed he was the son of Mary
Magdalene, and that his head was made of Spanish glass; and, sooth to say,
he suffered none to touch it, lest by mischance some heedless hand might
shiver it? Give thy misgivings easement, good my lord. This is
the very prince—I know him well—and soon will be thy king; it
may advantage thee to bear this in mind, and more dwell upon it than the
other.”</p>
<p>After some further talk, in which the Lord St. John covered up his mistake
as well as he could by repeated protests that his faith was thoroughly
grounded now, and could not be assailed by doubts again, the Lord Hertford
relieved his fellow-keeper, and sat down to keep watch and ward alone.
He was soon deep in meditation, and evidently the longer he thought,
the more he was bothered. By-and-by he began to pace the floor and
mutter.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link06-084" id="link06-084"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link06-084.jpg (61K)" src="images/06-084.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Tush, he <i>must</i> be the prince! Will any be in all the
land maintain there can be two, not of one blood and birth, so
marvellously twinned? And even were it so, ’twere yet a
stranger miracle that chance should cast the one into the other’s
place. Nay, ’tis folly, folly, folly!”</p>
<p>Presently he said—</p>
<p>“Now were he impostor and called himself prince, look you <i>that</i>
would be natural; that would be reasonable. But lived ever an
impostor yet, who, being called prince by the king, prince by the court,
prince by all, <i>denied</i> his dignity and pleaded against his
exaltation? <i>No</i>! By the soul of St. Swithin, no! This
is the true prince, gone mad!”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c7" id="c7"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link07-087" id="link07-087"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link07-087.jpg (90K)" src="images/07-087.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link07-089" id="link07-089"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link07-089.jpg (133K)" src="images/07-089.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter VII. Tom’s first royal dinner.</p>
<p>Somewhat after one in the afternoon, Tom resignedly underwent the ordeal
of being dressed for dinner. He found himself as finely clothed as
before, but everything different, everything changed, from his ruff to his
stockings. He was presently conducted with much state to a spacious
and ornate apartment, where a table was already set for one. Its
furniture was all of massy gold, and beautified with designs which
well-nigh made it priceless, since they were the work of Benvenuto. The
room was half-filled with noble servitors. A chaplain said grace,
and Tom was about to fall to, for hunger had long been constitutional with
him, but was interrupted by my lord the Earl of Berkeley, who fastened a
napkin about his neck; for the great post of Diaperers to the Prince of
Wales was hereditary in this nobleman’s family. Tom’s
cupbearer was present, and forestalled all his attempts to help himself to
wine. The Taster to his highness the Prince of Wales was there also,
prepared to taste any suspicious dish upon requirement, and run the risk
of being poisoned. He was only an ornamental appendage at this time,
and was seldom called upon to exercise his function; but there had been
times, not many generations past, when the office of taster had its
perils, and was not a grandeur to be desired. Why they did not use a
dog or a plumber seems strange; but all the ways of royalty are strange.
My Lord d’Arcy, First Groom of the Chamber, was there, to do
goodness knows what; but there he was—let that suffice. The
Lord Chief Butler was there, and stood behind Tom’s chair,
overseeing the solemnities, under command of the Lord Great Steward and
the Lord Head Cook, who stood near. Tom had three hundred and
eighty-four servants beside these; but they were not all in that room, of
course, nor the quarter of them; neither was Tom aware yet that they
existed.</p>
<p>All those that were present had been well drilled within the hour to
remember that the prince was temporarily out of his head, and to be
careful to show no surprise at his vagaries. These ‘vagaries’
were soon on exhibition before them; but they only moved their compassion
and their sorrow, not their mirth. It was a heavy affliction to them
to see the beloved prince so stricken.</p>
<p>Poor Tom ate with his fingers mainly; but no one smiled at it, or even
seemed to observe it. He inspected his napkin curiously, and with
deep interest, for it was of a very dainty and beautiful fabric, then said
with simplicity—</p>
<p>“Prithee, take it away, lest in mine unheedfulness it be soiled.”</p>
<p>The Hereditary Diaperer took it away with reverent manner, and without
word or protest of any sort.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link07-091" id="link07-091"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link07-091.jpg (156K)" src="images/07-091.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Tom examined the turnips and the lettuce with interest, and asked what
they were, and if they were to be eaten; for it was only recently that men
had begun to raise these things in England in place of importing them as
luxuries from Holland. {1} His question was answered with grave
respect, and no surprise manifested. When he had finished his
dessert, he filled his pockets with nuts; but nobody appeared to be aware
of it, or disturbed by it. But the next moment he was himself
disturbed by it, and showed discomposure; for this was the only service he
had been permitted to do with his own hands during the meal, and he did
not doubt that he had done a most improper and unprincely thing. At
that moment the muscles of his nose began to twitch, and the end of that
organ to lift and wrinkle. This continued, and Tom began to evince a
growing distress. He looked appealingly, first at one and then
another of the lords about him, and tears came into his eyes. They
sprang forward with dismay in their faces, and begged to know his trouble.
Tom said with genuine anguish—</p>
<p>“I crave your indulgence: my nose itcheth cruelly. What
is the custom and usage in this emergence? Prithee, speed, for
’tis but a little time that I can bear it.”</p>
<p>None smiled; but all were sore perplexed, and looked one to the other in
deep tribulation for counsel. But behold, here was a dead wall, and
nothing in English history to tell how to get over it. The Master of
Ceremonies was not present: there was no one who felt safe to
venture upon this uncharted sea, or risk the attempt to solve this solemn
problem. Alas! there was no Hereditary Scratcher. Meantime the
tears had overflowed their banks, and begun to trickle down Tom’s
cheeks. His twitching nose was pleading more urgently than ever for
relief. At last nature broke down the barriers of etiquette: Tom
lifted up an inward prayer for pardon if he was doing wrong, and brought
relief to the burdened hearts of his court by scratching his nose himself.</p>
<p>His meal being ended, a lord came and held before him a broad, shallow,
golden dish with fragrant rosewater in it, to cleanse his mouth and
fingers with; and my lord the Hereditary Diaperer stood by with a napkin
for his use. Tom gazed at the dish a puzzled moment or two, then
raised it to his lips, and gravely took a draught. Then he returned
it to the waiting lord, and said—</p>
<p>“Nay, it likes me not, my lord: it hath a pretty flavour, but
it wanteth strength.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link07-092" id="link07-092"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link07-092.jpg (87K)" src="images/07-092.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>This new eccentricity of the prince’s ruined mind made all the
hearts about him ache; but the sad sight moved none to merriment.</p>
<p>Tom’s next unconscious blunder was to get up and leave the table
just when the chaplain had taken his stand behind his chair, and with
uplifted hands, and closed, uplifted eyes, was in the act of beginning the
blessing. Still nobody seemed to perceive that the prince had done a
thing unusual.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link07-093" id="link07-093"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link07-093.jpg (179K)" src="images/07-093.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>By his own request our small friend was now conducted to his private
cabinet, and left there alone to his own devices. Hanging upon hooks
in the oaken wainscoting were the several pieces of a suit of shining
steel armour, covered all over with beautiful designs exquisitely inlaid
in gold. This martial panoply belonged to the true prince—a
recent present from Madam Parr the Queen. Tom put on the greaves, the
gauntlets, the plumed helmet, and such other pieces as he could don
without assistance, and for a while was minded to call for help and
complete the matter, but bethought him of the nuts he had brought away
from dinner, and the joy it would be to eat them with no crowd to eye him,
and no Grand Hereditaries to pester him with undesired services; so he
restored the pretty things to their several places, and soon was cracking
nuts, and feeling almost naturally happy for the first time since God for
his sins had made him a prince. When the nuts were all gone, he
stumbled upon some inviting books in a closet, among them one about the
etiquette of the English court. This was a prize. He lay down upon a
sumptuous divan, and proceeded to instruct himself with honest zeal.
Let us leave him there for the present.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c8" id="c8"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link08-095" id="link08-095"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link08-095.jpg (51K)" src="images/08-095.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter VIII. The Question of the Seal.</p>
<p>About five o’clock Henry VIII. awoke out of an unrefreshing nap, and
muttered to himself, “Troublous dreams, troublous dreams! Mine end
is now at hand: so say these warnings, and my failing pulses do
confirm it.” Presently a wicked light flamed up in his eye, and he
muttered, “Yet will not I die till <i>He</i> go before.”</p>
<p>His attendants perceiving that he was awake, one of them asked his
pleasure concerning the Lord Chancellor, who was waiting without.</p>
<p>“Admit him, admit him!” exclaimed the King eagerly.</p>
<p>The Lord Chancellor entered, and knelt by the King’s couch, saying—</p>
<p>“I have given order, and, according to the King’s command, the
peers of the realm, in their robes, do now stand at the bar of the House,
where, having confirmed the Duke of Norfolk’s doom, they humbly wait
his majesty’s further pleasure in the matter.”</p>
<p>The King’s face lit up with a fierce joy. Said he—</p>
<p>“Lift me up! In mine own person will I go before my
Parliament, and with mine own hand will I seal the warrant that rids me of—”</p>
<p>His voice failed; an ashen pallor swept the flush from his cheeks; and the
attendants eased him back upon his pillows, and hurriedly assisted him
with restoratives. Presently he said sorrowfully—</p>
<p>“Alack, how have I longed for this sweet hour! and lo, too late it
cometh, and I am robbed of this so coveted chance. But speed ye,
speed ye! let others do this happy office sith ’tis denied to me. I
put my Great Seal in commission: choose thou the lords that shall
compose it, and get ye to your work. Speed ye, man! Before the
sun shall rise and set again, bring me his head that I may see it.”</p>
<p>“According to the King’s command, so shall it be. Will’t
please your majesty to order that the Seal be now restored to me, so that
I may forth upon the business?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link08-098" id="link08-098"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link08-098.jpg (99K)" src="images/08-098.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“The Seal? Who keepeth the Seal but thou?”</p>
<p>“Please your majesty, you did take it from me two days since, saying
it should no more do its office till your own royal hand should use it
upon the Duke of Norfolk’s warrant.”</p>
<p>“Why, so in sooth I did: I do remember. . . . What did I with
it? . . . I am very feeble. . . . So oft these days doth my memory play
the traitor with me. . . . ’Tis strange, strange—”</p>
<p>The King dropped into inarticulate mumblings, shaking his grey head weakly
from time to time, and gropingly trying to recollect what he had done with
the Seal. At last my Lord Hertford ventured to kneel and offer
information—</p>
<p>“Sire, if that I may be so bold, here be several that do remember
with me how that you gave the Great Seal into the hands of his highness
the Prince of Wales to keep against the day that—”</p>
<p>“True, most true!” interrupted the King. "Fetch it!
Go: time flieth!”</p>
<p>Lord Hertford flew to Tom, but returned to the King before very long,
troubled and empty-handed. He delivered himself to this effect—</p>
<p>“It grieveth me, my lord the King, to bear so heavy and unwelcome
tidings; but it is the will of God that the prince’s affliction
abideth still, and he cannot recall to mind that he received the Seal.
So came I quickly to report, thinking it were waste of precious
time, and little worth withal, that any should attempt to search the long
array of chambers and saloons that belong unto his royal high—”</p>
<p>A groan from the King interrupted the lord at this point. After a
little while his majesty said, with a deep sadness in his tone—</p>
<p>“Trouble him no more, poor child. The hand of God lieth heavy
upon him, and my heart goeth out in loving compassion for him, and sorrow
that I may not bear his burden on mine old trouble-weighted shoulders, and
so bring him peace.”</p>
<p>He closed his eyes, fell to mumbling, and presently was silent. After a
time he opened his eyes again, and gazed vacantly around until his glance
rested upon the kneeling Lord Chancellor. Instantly his face flushed with
wrath—</p>
<p>“What, thou here yet! By the glory of God, an’ thou
gettest not about that traitor’s business, thy mitre shall have
holiday the morrow for lack of a head to grace withal!”</p>
<p>The trembling Chancellor answered—</p>
<p>“Good your Majesty, I cry you mercy! I but waited for the
Seal.”</p>
<p>“Man, hast lost thy wits? The small Seal which aforetime I was
wont to take with me abroad lieth in my treasury. And, since the
Great Seal hath flown away, shall not it suffice? Hast lost thy
wits? Begone! And hark ye—come no more till thou do
bring his head.”</p>
<p>The poor Chancellor was not long in removing himself from this dangerous
vicinity; nor did the commission waste time in giving the royal assent to
the work of the slavish Parliament, and appointing the morrow for the
beheading of the premier peer of England, the luckless Duke of Norfolk.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c9" id="c9"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link09-101" id="link09-101"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link09-101.jpg (60K)" src="images/09-101.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter IX. The river pageant.</p>
<p>At nine in the evening the whole vast river-front of the palace was
blazing with light. The river itself, as far as the eye could reach
citywards, was so thickly covered with watermen’s boats and with
pleasure-barges, all fringed with coloured lanterns, and gently agitated
by the waves, that it resembled a glowing and limitless garden of flowers
stirred to soft motion by summer winds. The grand terrace of stone
steps leading down to the water, spacious enough to mass the army of a
German principality upon, was a picture to see, with its ranks of royal
halberdiers in polished armour, and its troops of brilliantly costumed
servitors flitting up and down, and to and fro, in the hurry of
preparation.</p>
<p>Presently a command was given, and immediately all living creatures
vanished from the steps. Now the air was heavy with the hush of
suspense and expectancy. As far as one’s vision could carry,
he might see the myriads of people in the boats rise up, and shade their
eyes from the glare of lanterns and torches, and gaze toward the palace.</p>
<p>A file of forty or fifty state barges drew up to the steps. They
were richly gilt, and their lofty prows and sterns were elaborately
carved. Some of them were decorated with banners and streamers; some with
cloth-of-gold and arras embroidered with coats-of-arms; others with silken
flags that had numberless little silver bells fastened to them, which
shook out tiny showers of joyous music whenever the breezes fluttered
them; others of yet higher pretensions, since they belonged to nobles in
the prince’s immediate service, had their sides picturesquely fenced
with shields gorgeously emblazoned with armorial bearings. Each
state barge was towed by a tender. Besides the rowers, these tenders
carried each a number of men-at-arms in glossy helmet and breastplate, and
a company of musicians.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link09-104" id="link09-104"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link09-104.jpg (178K)" src="images/09-104.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The advance-guard of the expected procession now appeared in the great
gateway, a troop of halberdiers. ’They were dressed in striped
hose of black and tawny, velvet caps graced at the sides with silver
roses, and doublets of murrey and blue cloth, embroidered on the front and
back with the three feathers, the prince’s blazon, woven in gold.
Their halberd staves were covered with crimson velvet, fastened with
gilt nails, and ornamented with gold tassels. Filing off on the
right and left, they formed two long lines, extending from the gateway of
the palace to the water’s edge. A thick rayed cloth or carpet
was then unfolded, and laid down between them by attendants in the
gold-and-crimson liveries of the prince. This done, a flourish of
trumpets resounded from within. A lively prelude arose from the
musicians on the water; and two ushers with white wands marched with a
slow and stately pace from the portal. They were followed by an
officer bearing the civic mace, after whom came another carrying the city’s
sword; then several sergeants of the city guard, in their full
accoutrements, and with badges on their sleeves; then the Garter
King-at-arms, in his tabard; then several Knights of the Bath, each with a
white lace on his sleeve; then their esquires; then the judges, in their
robes of scarlet and coifs; then the Lord High Chancellor of England, in a
robe of scarlet, open before, and purfled with minever; then a deputation
of aldermen, in their scarlet cloaks; and then the heads of the different
civic companies, in their robes of state. Now came twelve French
gentlemen, in splendid habiliments, consisting of pourpoints of white
damask barred with gold, short mantles of crimson velvet lined with violet
taffeta, and carnation coloured hauts-de-chausses, and took their way down
the steps. They were of the suite of the French ambassador, and were
followed by twelve cavaliers of the suite of the Spanish ambassador,
clothed in black velvet, unrelieved by any ornament. Following these
came several great English nobles with their attendants.’</p>
<p>There was a flourish of trumpets within; and the Prince’s uncle, the
future great Duke of Somerset, emerged from the gateway, arrayed in a
‘doublet of black cloth-of-gold, and a cloak of crimson satin
flowered with gold, and ribanded with nets of silver.’ He
turned, doffed his plumed cap, bent his body in a low reverence, and began
to step backward, bowing at each step. A prolonged trumpet-blast
followed, and a proclamation, “Way for the high and mighty the Lord
Edward, Prince of Wales!” High aloft on the palace walls a
long line of red tongues of flame leapt forth with a thunder-crash; the
massed world on the river burst into a mighty roar of welcome; and Tom
Canty, the cause and hero of it all, stepped into view and slightly bowed
his princely head.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link09-106" id="link09-106"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link09-106.jpg (46K)" src="images/09-106.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He was ‘magnificently habited in a doublet of white satin, with a
front-piece of purple cloth-of-tissue, powdered with diamonds, and edged
with ermine. Over this he wore a mantle of white cloth-of-gold,
pounced with the triple-feathered crest, lined with blue satin, set with
pearls and precious stones, and fastened with a clasp of brilliants.
About his neck hung the order of the Garter, and several princely
foreign orders;’ and wherever light fell upon him jewels responded
with a blinding flash. O Tom Canty, born in a hovel, bred in the
gutters of London, familiar with rags and dirt and misery, what a
spectacle is this!</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c10" id="c10"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link10-107" id="link10-107"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-107.jpg (46K)" src="images/10-107.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter X. The Prince in the toils.</p>
<p>We left John Canty dragging the rightful prince into Offal Court, with a
noisy and delighted mob at his heels. There was but one person in it
who offered a pleading word for the captive, and he was not heeded; he was
hardly even heard, so great was the turmoil. The Prince continued to
struggle for freedom, and to rage against the treatment he was suffering,
until John Canty lost what little patience was left in him, and raised his
oaken cudgel in a sudden fury over the Prince’s head. The
single pleader for the lad sprang to stop the man’s arm, and the
blow descended upon his own wrist. Canty roared out—</p>
<p>“Thou’lt meddle, wilt thou? Then have thy reward.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-110" id="link10-110"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-110.jpg (100K)" src="images/10-110.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>His cudgel crashed down upon the meddler’s head: there was a
groan, a dim form sank to the ground among the feet of the crowd, and the
next moment it lay there in the dark alone. The mob pressed on,
their enjoyment nothing disturbed by this episode.</p>
<p>Presently the Prince found himself in John Canty’s abode, with the
door closed against the outsiders. By the vague light of a tallow
candle which was thrust into a bottle, he made out the main features of
the loathsome den, and also the occupants of it. Two frowsy girls
and a middle-aged woman cowered against the wall in one corner, with the
aspect of animals habituated to harsh usage, and expecting and dreading it
now. From another corner stole a withered hag with streaming grey hair and
malignant eyes. John Canty said to this one—</p>
<p>“Tarry! There’s fine mummeries here. Mar them not
till thou’st enjoyed them: then let thy hand be heavy as thou
wilt. Stand forth, lad. Now say thy foolery again, an thou’st
not forgot it. Name thy name. Who art thou?”</p>
<p>The insulted blood mounted to the little prince’s cheek once more,
and he lifted a steady and indignant gaze to the man’s face and said—</p>
<p>“’Tis but ill-breeding in such as thou to command me to speak.
I tell thee now, as I told thee before, I am Edward, Prince of
Wales, and none other.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-111" id="link10-111"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-111.jpg (133K)" src="images/10-111.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The stunning surprise of this reply nailed the hag’s feet to the
floor where she stood, and almost took her breath. She stared at the
Prince in stupid amazement, which so amused her ruffianly son, that he
burst into a roar of laughter. But the effect upon Tom Canty’s
mother and sisters was different. Their dread of bodily injury gave
way at once to distress of a different sort. They ran forward with
woe and dismay in their faces, exclaiming—</p>
<p>“Oh, poor Tom, poor lad!”</p>
<p>The mother fell on her knees before the Prince, put her hands upon his
shoulders, and gazed yearningly into his face through her rising tears.
Then she said—</p>
<p>“Oh, my poor boy! Thy foolish reading hath wrought its woeful
work at last, and ta’en thy wit away. Ah! why did’st
thou cleave to it when I so warned thee ’gainst it? Thou’st
broke thy mother’s heart.”</p>
<p>The Prince looked into her face, and said gently—</p>
<p>“Thy son is well, and hath not lost his wits, good dame. Comfort
thee: let me to the palace where he is, and straightway will the King my
father restore him to thee.”</p>
<p>“The King thy father! Oh, my child! unsay these words that be
freighted with death for thee, and ruin for all that be near to thee.
Shake of this gruesome dream. Call back thy poor wandering
memory. Look upon me. Am not I thy mother that bore thee, and loveth
thee?”</p>
<p>The Prince shook his head and reluctantly said—</p>
<p>“God knoweth I am loth to grieve thy heart; but truly have I never
looked upon thy face before.”</p>
<p>The woman sank back to a sitting posture on the floor, and, covering her
eyes with her hands, gave way to heart-broken sobs and wailings.</p>
<p>“Let the show go on!” shouted Canty. "What, Nan!—what,
Bet! mannerless wenches! will ye stand in the Prince’s presence?
Upon your knees, ye pauper scum, and do him reverence!”</p>
<p>He followed this with another horse-laugh. The girls began to plead
timidly for their brother; and Nan said—</p>
<p>“An thou wilt but let him to bed, father, rest and sleep will heal
his madness: prithee, do.”</p>
<p>“Do, father,” said Bet; “he is more worn than is his
wont. To-morrow will he be himself again, and will beg with
diligence, and come not empty home again.”</p>
<p>This remark sobered the father’s joviality, and brought his mind to
business. He turned angrily upon the Prince, and said—</p>
<p>“The morrow must we pay two pennies to him that owns this hole; two
pennies, mark ye—all this money for a half-year’s rent, else
out of this we go. Show what thou’st gathered with thy lazy
begging.”</p>
<p>The Prince said—</p>
<p>“Offend me not with thy sordid matters. I tell thee again I am
the King’s son.”</p>
<p>A sounding blow upon the Prince’s shoulder from Canty’s broad
palm sent him staggering into goodwife Canty’s arms, who clasped him
to her breast, and sheltered him from a pelting rain of cuffs and slaps by
interposing her own person. The frightened girls retreated to their
corner; but the grandmother stepped eagerly forward to assist her son.
The Prince sprang away from Mrs. Canty, exclaiming—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-113" id="link10-113"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-113.jpg (105K)" src="images/10-113.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Thou shalt not suffer for me, madam. Let these swine do their
will upon me alone.”</p>
<p>This speech infuriated the swine to such a degree that they set about
their work without waste of time. Between them they belaboured the
boy right soundly, and then gave the girls and their mother a beating for
showing sympathy for the victim.</p>
<p>“Now,” said Canty, “to bed, all of ye. The
entertainment has tired me.”</p>
<p>The light was put out, and the family retired. As soon as the
snorings of the head of the house and his mother showed that they were
asleep, the young girls crept to where the Prince lay, and covered him
tenderly from the cold with straw and rags; and their mother crept to him
also, and stroked his hair, and cried over him, whispering broken words of
comfort and compassion in his ear the while. She had saved a morsel
for him to eat, also; but the boy’s pains had swept away all
appetite—at least for black and tasteless crusts. He was
touched by her brave and costly defence of him, and by her commiseration;
and he thanked her in very noble and princely words, and begged her to go
to her sleep and try to forget her sorrows. And he added that the
King his father would not let her loyal kindness and devotion go
unrewarded. This return to his ‘madness’ broke her heart
anew, and she strained him to her breast again and again, and then went
back, drowned in tears, to her bed.</p>
<p>As she lay thinking and mourning, the suggestion began to creep into her
mind that there was an undefinable something about this boy that was
lacking in Tom Canty, mad or sane. She could not describe it, she
could not tell just what it was, and yet her sharp mother-instinct seemed
to detect it and perceive it. What if the boy were really not her
son, after all? Oh, absurd! She almost smiled at the idea,
spite of her griefs and troubles. No matter, she found that it was
an idea that would not ‘down,’ but persisted in haunting her.
It pursued her, it harassed her, it clung to her, and refused to be
put away or ignored. At last she perceived that there was not going
to be any peace for her until she should devise a test that should prove,
clearly and without question, whether this lad was her son or not, and so
banish these wearing and worrying doubts. Ah, yes, this was plainly
the right way out of the difficulty; therefore she set her wits to work at
once to contrive that test. But it was an easier thing to propose
than to accomplish. She turned over in her mind one promising test
after another, but was obliged to relinquish them all—none of them
were absolutely sure, absolutely perfect; and an imperfect one could not
satisfy her. Evidently she was racking her head in vain—it
seemed manifest that she must give the matter up. While this
depressing thought was passing through her mind, her ear caught the
regular breathing of the boy, and she knew he had fallen asleep. And
while she listened, the measured breathing was broken by a soft, startled
cry, such as one utters in a troubled dream. This chance occurrence
furnished her instantly with a plan worth all her laboured tests combined.
She at once set herself feverishly, but noiselessly, to work to
relight her candle, muttering to herself, “Had I but seen him <i>then</i>,
I should have known! Since that day, when he was little, that the
powder burst in his face, he hath never been startled of a sudden out of
his dreams or out of his thinkings, but he hath cast his hand before his
eyes, even as he did that day; and not as others would do it, with the
palm inward, but always with the palm turned outward—I have seen it
a hundred times, and it hath never varied nor ever failed. Yes, I
shall soon know, now!”</p>
<p>By this time she had crept to the slumbering boy’s side, with the
candle, shaded, in her hand. She bent heedfully and warily over him,
scarcely breathing in her suppressed excitement, and suddenly flashed the
light in his face and struck the floor by his ear with her knuckles.
The sleeper’s eyes sprang wide open, and he cast a startled
stare about him—but he made no special movement with his hands.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-115" id="link10-115"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-115.jpg (138K)" src="images/10-115.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The poor woman was smitten almost helpless with surprise and grief; but
she contrived to hide her emotions, and to soothe the boy to sleep again;
then she crept apart and communed miserably with herself upon the
disastrous result of her experiment. She tried to believe that her
Tom’s madness had banished this habitual gesture of his; but she
could not do it. "No,” she said, “his <i>hands</i> are
not mad; they could not unlearn so old a habit in so brief a time. Oh,
this is a heavy day for me!”</p>
<p>Still, hope was as stubborn now as doubt had been before; she could not
bring herself to accept the verdict of the test; she must try the thing
again—the failure must have been only an accident; so she startled
the boy out of his sleep a second and a third time, at intervals—with
the same result which had marked the first test; then she dragged herself
to bed, and fell sorrowfully asleep, saying, “But I cannot give him
up—oh no, I cannot, I cannot—he <i>must</i> be my boy!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-116" id="link10-116"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-116.jpg (62K)" src="images/10-116.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The poor mother’s interruptions having ceased, and the Prince’s
pains having gradually lost their power to disturb him, utter weariness at
last sealed his eyes in a profound and restful sleep. Hour after hour
slipped away, and still he slept like the dead. Thus four or five hours
passed. Then his stupor began to lighten. Presently, while half asleep and
half awake, he murmured—</p>
<p>“Sir William!”</p>
<p>After a moment—</p>
<p>“Ho, Sir William Herbert! Hie thee hither, and list to the
strangest dream that ever . . . Sir William! dost hear? Man, I did
think me changed to a pauper, and . . . Ho there! Guards! Sir
William! What! is there no groom of the chamber in waiting? Alack!
it shall go hard with—”</p>
<p>“What aileth thee?” asked a whisper near him. "Who art
thou calling?”</p>
<p>“Sir William Herbert. Who art thou?”</p>
<p>“I? Who should I be, but thy sister Nan? Oh, Tom, I had
forgot! Thou’rt mad yet—poor lad, thou’rt mad yet:
would I had never woke to know it again! But prithee master
thy tongue, lest we be all beaten till we die!”</p>
<p>The startled Prince sprang partly up, but a sharp reminder from his
stiffened bruises brought him to himself, and he sank back among his foul
straw with a moan and the ejaculation—</p>
<p>“Alas! it was no dream, then!”</p>
<p>In a moment all the heavy sorrow and misery which sleep had banished were
upon him again, and he realised that he was no longer a petted prince in a
palace, with the adoring eyes of a nation upon him, but a pauper, an
outcast, clothed in rags, prisoner in a den fit only for beasts, and
consorting with beggars and thieves.</p>
<p>In the midst of his grief he began to be conscious of hilarious noises and
shoutings, apparently but a block or two away. The next moment there
were several sharp raps at the door; John Canty ceased from snoring and
said—</p>
<p>“Who knocketh? What wilt thou?”</p>
<p>A voice answered—</p>
<p>“Know’st thou who it was thou laid thy cudgel on?”</p>
<p>“No. Neither know I, nor care.”</p>
<p>“Belike thou’lt change thy note eftsoons. An thou would
save thy neck, nothing but flight may stead thee. The man is this
moment delivering up the ghost. ’Tis the priest, Father
Andrew!”</p>
<p>“God-a-mercy!” exclaimed Canty. He roused his family,
and hoarsely commanded, “Up with ye all and fly—or bide where
ye are and perish!”</p>
<p>Scarcely five minutes later the Canty household were in the street and
flying for their lives. John Canty held the Prince by the wrist, and
hurried him along the dark way, giving him this caution in a low voice—</p>
<p>“Mind thy tongue, thou mad fool, and speak not our name. I
will choose me a new name, speedily, to throw the law’s dogs off the
scent. Mind thy tongue, I tell thee!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-118" id="link10-118"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-118.jpg (142K)" src="images/10-118.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He growled these words to the rest of the family—</p>
<p>“If it so chance that we be separated, let each make for London
Bridge; whoso findeth himself as far as the last linen-draper’s shop
on the bridge, let him tarry there till the others be come, then will we
flee into Southwark together.”</p>
<p>At this moment the party burst suddenly out of darkness into light; and
not only into light, but into the midst of a multitude of singing,
dancing, and shouting people, massed together on the river frontage. There
was a line of bonfires stretching as far as one could see, up and down the
Thames; London Bridge was illuminated; Southwark Bridge likewise; the
entire river was aglow with the flash and sheen of coloured lights; and
constant explosions of fireworks filled the skies with an intricate
commingling of shooting splendours and a thick rain of dazzling sparks
that almost turned night into day; everywhere were crowds of revellers;
all London seemed to be at large.</p>
<p>John Canty delivered himself of a furious curse and commanded a retreat;
but it was too late. He and his tribe were swallowed up in that
swarming hive of humanity, and hopelessly separated from each other in an
instant. We are not considering that the Prince was one of his tribe;
Canty still kept his grip upon him. The Prince’s heart was
beating high with hopes of escape, now. A burly waterman,
considerably exalted with liquor, found himself rudely shoved by Canty in
his efforts to plough through the crowd; he laid his great hand on Canty’s
shoulder and said—</p>
<p>“Nay, whither so fast, friend? Dost canker thy soul with
sordid business when all that be leal men and true make holiday?”</p>
<p>“Mine affairs are mine own, they concern thee not,” answered
Canty, roughly; “take away thy hand and let me pass.”</p>
<p>“Sith that is thy humour, thou’lt <i>not</i> pass, till thou’st
drunk to the Prince of Wales, I tell thee that,” said the waterman,
barring the way resolutely.</p>
<p>“Give me the cup, then, and make speed, make speed!”</p>
<p>Other revellers were interested by this time. They cried out—</p>
<p>“The loving-cup, the loving-cup! make the sour knave drink the
loving-cup, else will we feed him to the fishes.”</p>
<p>So a huge loving-cup was brought; the waterman, grasping it by one of its
handles, and with the other hand bearing up the end of an imaginary
napkin, presented it in due and ancient form to Canty, who had to grasp
the opposite handle with one of his hands and take off the lid with the
other, according to ancient custom. This left the Prince hand-free for a
second, of course. He wasted no time, but dived among the forest of
legs about him and disappeared. In another moment he could not have
been harder to find, under that tossing sea of life, if its billows had
been the Atlantic’s and he a lost sixpence.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link10-120" id="link10-120"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link10-120.jpg (148K)" src="images/10-120.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He very soon realised this fact, and straightway busied himself about his
own affairs without further thought of John Canty. He quickly
realised another thing, too. To wit, that a spurious Prince of Wales
was being feasted by the city in his stead. He easily concluded that
the pauper lad, Tom Canty, had deliberately taken advantage of his
stupendous opportunity and become a usurper.</p>
<p>Therefore there was but one course to pursue—find his way to the
Guildhall, make himself known, and denounce the impostor. He also
made up his mind that Tom should be allowed a reasonable time for
spiritual preparation, and then be hanged, drawn and quartered, according
to the law and usage of the day in cases of high treason.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c11" id="c11"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link11-121" id="link11-121"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link11-121.jpg (56K)" src="images/11-121.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/> <br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XI. At Guildhall.</p>
<p>The royal barge, attended by its gorgeous fleet, took its stately way down
the Thames through the wilderness of illuminated boats. The air was laden
with music; the river banks were beruffled with joy-flames; the distant
city lay in a soft luminous glow from its countless invisible bonfires;
above it rose many a slender spire into the sky, incrusted with sparkling
lights, wherefore in their remoteness they seemed like jewelled lances
thrust aloft; as the fleet swept along, it was greeted from the banks with
a continuous hoarse roar of cheers and the ceaseless flash and boom of
artillery.</p>
<p>To Tom Canty, half buried in his silken cushions, these sounds and this
spectacle were a wonder unspeakably sublime and astonishing. To his little
friends at his side, the Princess Elizabeth and the Lady Jane Grey, they
were nothing.</p>
<p>Arrived at the Dowgate, the fleet was towed up the limpid Walbrook (whose
channel has now been for two centuries buried out of sight under acres of
buildings) to Bucklersbury, past houses and under bridges populous with
merry-makers and brilliantly lighted, and at last came to a halt in a
basin where now is Barge Yard, in the centre of the ancient city of
London. Tom disembarked, and he and his gallant procession crossed
Cheapside and made a short march through the Old Jewry and Basinghall
Street to the Guildhall.</p>
<p>Tom and his little ladies were received with due ceremony by the Lord
Mayor and the Fathers of the City, in their gold chains and scarlet robes
of state, and conducted to a rich canopy of state at the head of the great
hall, preceded by heralds making proclamation, and by the Mace and the
City Sword. The lords and ladies who were to attend upon Tom and his
two small friends took their places behind their chairs.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link11-124" id="link11-124"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link11-124.jpg (173K)" src="images/11-124.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>At a lower table the Court grandees and other guests of noble degree were
seated, with the magnates of the city; the commoners took places at a
multitude of tables on the main floor of the hall. From their lofty
vantage-ground the giants Gog and Magog, the ancient guardians of the
city, contemplated the spectacle below them with eyes grown familiar to it
in forgotten generations. There was a bugle-blast and a
proclamation, and a fat butler appeared in a high perch in the leftward
wall, followed by his servitors bearing with impressive solemnity a royal
baron of beef, smoking hot and ready for the knife.</p>
<p>After grace, Tom (being instructed) rose—and the whole house with
him—and drank from a portly golden loving-cup with the Princess
Elizabeth; from her it passed to the Lady Jane, and then traversed the
general assemblage. So the banquet began.</p>
<p>By midnight the revelry was at its height. Now came one of those
picturesque spectacles so admired in that old day. A description of
it is still extant in the quaint wording of a chronicler who witnessed it:</p>
<p>‘Space being made, presently entered a baron and an earl appareled
after the Turkish fashion in long robes of bawdkin powdered with gold;
hats on their heads of crimson velvet, with great rolls of gold, girded
with two swords, called scimitars, hanging by great bawdricks of gold.
Next came yet another baron and another earl, in two long gowns of
yellow satin, traversed with white satin, and in every bend of white was a
bend of crimson satin, after the fashion of Russia, with furred hats of
gray on their heads; either of them having an hatchet in their hands, and
boots with pykes’ (points a foot long), ’turned up. And
after them came a knight, then the Lord High Admiral, and with him five
nobles, in doublets of crimson velvet, voyded low on the back and before
to the cannell-bone, laced on the breasts with chains of silver; and over
that, short cloaks of crimson satin, and on their heads hats after the
dancers’ fashion, with pheasants’ feathers in them. These
were appareled after the fashion of Prussia. The torchbearers, which
were about an hundred, were appareled in crimson satin and green, like
Moors, their faces black. Next came in a mommarye. Then the minstrels,
which were disguised, danced; and the lords and ladies did wildly dance
also, that it was a pleasure to behold.’</p>
<p>And while Tom, in his high seat, was gazing upon this ‘wild’
dancing, lost in admiration of the dazzling commingling of kaleidoscopic
colours which the whirling turmoil of gaudy figures below him presented,
the ragged but real little Prince of Wales was proclaiming his rights and
his wrongs, denouncing the impostor, and clamouring for admission at the
gates of Guildhall! The crowd enjoyed this episode prodigiously, and
pressed forward and craned their necks to see the small rioter. Presently
they began to taunt him and mock at him, purposely to goad him into a
higher and still more entertaining fury. Tears of mortification
sprang to his eyes, but he stood his ground and defied the mob right
royally. Other taunts followed, added mockings stung him, and he
exclaimed—</p>
<p>“I tell ye again, you pack of unmannerly curs, I am the Prince of
Wales! And all forlorn and friendless as I be, with none to give me word
of grace or help me in my need, yet will not I be driven from my ground,
but will maintain it!”</p>
<p>“Though thou be prince or no prince, ’tis all one, thou be’st
a gallant lad, and not friendless neither! Here stand I by thy side
to prove it; and mind I tell thee thou might’st have a worser friend
than Miles Hendon and yet not tire thy legs with seeking. Rest thy small
jaw, my child; I talk the language of these base kennel-rats like to a
very native.”</p>
<p>The speaker was a sort of Don Caesar de Bazan in dress, aspect, and
bearing. He was tall, trim-built, muscular. His doublet and
trunks were of rich material, but faded and threadbare, and their
gold-lace adornments were sadly tarnished; his ruff was rumpled and
damaged; the plume in his slouched hat was broken and had a bedraggled and
disreputable look; at his side he wore a long rapier in a rusty iron
sheath; his swaggering carriage marked him at once as a ruffler of the
camp. The speech of this fantastic figure was received with an
explosion of jeers and laughter. Some cried, “’Tis
another prince in disguise!” “’Ware thy tongue, friend:
belike he is dangerous!” "Marry, he looketh it—mark
his eye!” "Pluck the lad from him—to the horse-pond wi’
the cub!”</p>
<p>Instantly a hand was laid upon the Prince, under the impulse of this happy
thought; as instantly the stranger’s long sword was out and the
meddler went to the earth under a sounding thump with the flat of it. The
next moment a score of voices shouted, “Kill the dog! Kill
him! Kill him!” and the mob closed in on the warrior, who backed
himself against a wall and began to lay about him with his long weapon
like a madman. His victims sprawled this way and that, but the
mob-tide poured over their prostrate forms and dashed itself against the
champion with undiminished fury.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link11-127" id="link11-127"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link11-127.jpg (133K)" src="images/11-127.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>His moments seemed numbered, his destruction certain, when suddenly a
trumpet-blast sounded, a voice shouted, “Way for the King’s
messenger!” and a troop of horsemen came charging down upon the mob,
who fled out of harm’s reach as fast as their legs could carry them.
The bold stranger caught up the Prince in his arms, and was soon far away
from danger and the multitude.</p>
<p>Return we within the Guildhall. Suddenly, high above the jubilant
roar and thunder of the revel, broke the clear peal of a bugle-note.
There was instant silence—a deep hush; then a single voice
rose—that of the messenger from the palace—and began to pipe
forth a proclamation, the whole multitude standing listening.</p>
<p>The closing words, solemnly pronounced, were—</p>
<p>“The King is dead!”</p>
<p>The great assemblage bent their heads upon their breasts with one accord;
remained so, in profound silence, a few moments; then all sank upon their
knees in a body, stretched out their hands toward Tom, and a mighty shout
burst forth that seemed to shake the building—</p>
<p>“Long live the King!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link11-128" id="link11-128"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link11-128.jpg (154K)" src="images/11-128.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Poor Tom’s dazed eyes wandered abroad over this stupefying
spectacle, and finally rested dreamily upon the kneeling princesses beside
him, a moment, then upon the Earl of Hertford. A sudden purpose dawned in
his face. He said, in a low tone, at Lord Hertford’s ear—</p>
<p>“Answer me truly, on thy faith and honour! Uttered I here a
command, the which none but a king might hold privilege and prerogative to
utter, would such commandment be obeyed, and none rise up to say me nay?”</p>
<p>“None, my liege, in all these realms. In thy person bides the
majesty of England. Thou art the king—thy word is law.”</p>
<p>Tom responded, in a strong, earnest voice, and with great animation—</p>
<p>“Then shall the king’s law be law of mercy, from this day, and
never more be law of blood! Up from thy knees and away! To the
Tower, and say the King decrees the Duke of Norfolk shall not die!”</p>
<p>The words were caught up and carried eagerly from lip to lip far and wide
over the hall, and as Hertford hurried from the presence, another
prodigious shout burst forth—</p>
<p>“The reign of blood is ended! Long live Edward, King of
England!”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c12" id="c12"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link12-131" id="link12-131"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-131.jpg (62K)" src="images/12-131.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XII. The Prince and his Deliverer.</p>
<p>As soon as Miles Hendon and the little prince were clear of the mob, they
struck down through back lanes and alleys toward the river. Their
way was unobstructed until they approached London Bridge; then they
ploughed into the multitude again, Hendon keeping a fast grip upon the
Prince’s—no, the King’s—wrist. The
tremendous news was already abroad, and the boy learned it from a thousand
voices at once—“The King is dead!” The tidings
struck a chill to the heart of the poor little waif, and sent a shudder
through his frame. He realised the greatness of his loss, and was
filled with a bitter grief; for the grim tyrant who had been such a terror
to others had always been gentle with him. The tears sprang to his
eyes and blurred all objects. For an instant he felt himself the
most forlorn, outcast, and forsaken of God’s creatures—then
another cry shook the night with its far-reaching thunders: "Long
live King Edward the Sixth!” and this made his eyes kindle, and
thrilled him with pride to his fingers’ ends. “Ah,” he
thought, “how grand and strange it seems—<i>I am King</i>!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-134" id="link12-134"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-134.jpg (116K)" src="images/12-134.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Our friends threaded their way slowly through the throngs upon the bridge.
This structure, which had stood for six hundred years, and had been
a noisy and populous thoroughfare all that time, was a curious affair, for
a closely packed rank of stores and shops, with family quarters overhead,
stretched along both sides of it, from one bank of the river to the other.
The Bridge was a sort of town to itself; it had its inn, its
beer-houses, its bakeries, its haberdasheries, its food markets, its
manufacturing industries, and even its church. It looked upon the
two neighbours which it linked together—London and Southwark—as
being well enough as suburbs, but not otherwise particularly important.
It was a close corporation, so to speak; it was a narrow town, of a
single street a fifth of a mile long, its population was but a village
population and everybody in it knew all his fellow-townsmen intimately,
and had known their fathers and mothers before them—and all their
little family affairs into the bargain. It had its aristocracy, of
course—its fine old families of butchers, and bakers, and what-not,
who had occupied the same old premises for five or six hundred years, and
knew the great history of the Bridge from beginning to end, and all its
strange legends; and who always talked bridgy talk, and thought bridgy
thoughts, and lied in a long, level, direct, substantial bridgy way.
It was just the sort of population to be narrow and ignorant and
self-conceited. Children were born on the Bridge, were reared there, grew
to old age, and finally died without ever having set a foot upon any part
of the world but London Bridge alone. Such people would naturally
imagine that the mighty and interminable procession which moved through
its street night and day, with its confused roar of shouts and cries, its
neighings and bellowing and bleatings and its muffled thunder-tramp, was
the one great thing in this world, and themselves somehow the proprietors
of it. And so they were, in effect—at least they could exhibit
it from their windows, and did—for a consideration—whenever a
returning king or hero gave it a fleeting splendour, for there was no
place like it for affording a long, straight, uninterrupted view of
marching columns.</p>
<p>Men born and reared upon the Bridge found life unendurably dull and inane
elsewhere. History tells of one of these who left the Bridge at the
age of seventy-one and retired to the country. But he could only
fret and toss in his bed; he could not go to sleep, the deep stillness was
so painful, so awful, so oppressive. When he was worn out with it,
at last, he fled back to his old home, a lean and haggard spectre, and
fell peacefully to rest and pleasant dreams under the lulling music of the
lashing waters and the boom and crash and thunder of London Bridge.</p>
<p>In the times of which we are writing, the Bridge furnished ‘object
lessons’ in English history for its children—namely, the livid
and decaying heads of renowned men impaled upon iron spikes atop of its
gateways. But we digress.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-136" id="link12-136"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-136.jpg (35K)" src="images/12-136.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hendon’s lodgings were in the little inn on the Bridge. As he
neared the door with his small friend, a rough voice said—</p>
<p>“So, thou’rt come at last! Thou’lt not escape
again, I warrant thee; and if pounding thy bones to a pudding can teach
thee somewhat, thou’lt not keep us waiting another time, mayhap,”—and
John Canty put out his hand to seize the boy.</p>
<p>Miles Hendon stepped in the way and said—</p>
<p>“Not too fast, friend. Thou art needlessly rough, methinks.
What is the lad to thee?”</p>
<p>“If it be any business of thine to make and meddle in others’
affairs, he is my son.”</p>
<p>“’Tis a lie!” cried the little King, hotly.</p>
<p>“Boldly said, and I believe thee, whether thy small headpiece be
sound or cracked, my boy. But whether this scurvy ruffian be thy
father or no, ’tis all one, he shall not have thee to beat thee and
abuse, according to his threat, so thou prefer to bide with me.”</p>
<p>“I do, I do—I know him not, I loathe him, and will die before
I will go with him.”</p>
<p>“Then ’tis settled, and there is nought more to say.”</p>
<p>“We will see, as to that!” exclaimed John Canty, striding past
Hendon to get at the boy; “by force shall he—”</p>
<p>“If thou do but touch him, thou animated offal, I will spit thee
like a goose!” said Hendon, barring the way and laying his hand upon
his sword hilt. Canty drew back. "Now mark ye,”
continued Hendon, “I took this lad under my protection when a mob of
such as thou would have mishandled him, mayhap killed him; dost imagine I
will desert him now to a worser fate?—for whether thou art his
father or no—and sooth to say, I think it is a lie—a decent
swift death were better for such a lad than life in such brute hands as
thine. So go thy ways, and set quick about it, for I like not much
bandying of words, being not over-patient in my nature.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-137" id="link12-137"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-137.jpg (107K)" src="images/12-137.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>John Canty moved off, muttering threats and curses, and was swallowed from
sight in the crowd. Hendon ascended three flights of stairs to his
room, with his charge, after ordering a meal to be sent thither. It
was a poor apartment, with a shabby bed and some odds and ends of old
furniture in it, and was vaguely lighted by a couple of sickly candles.
The little King dragged himself to the bed and lay down upon it, almost
exhausted with hunger and fatigue. He had been on his feet a good
part of a day and a night (for it was now two or three o’clock in
the morning), and had eaten nothing meantime. He murmured drowsily—</p>
<p>“Prithee call me when the table is spread,” and sank into a
deep sleep immediately.</p>
<p>A smile twinkled in Hendon’s eye, and he said to himself—</p>
<p>“By the mass, the little beggar takes to one’s quarters and
usurps one’s bed with as natural and easy a grace as if he owned
them—with never a by-your-leave or so-please-it-you, or anything of
the sort. In his diseased ravings he called himself the Prince of
Wales, and bravely doth he keep up the character. Poor little
friendless rat, doubtless his mind has been disordered with ill-usage.
Well, I will be his friend; I have saved him, and it draweth me
strongly to him; already I love the bold-tongued little rascal. How
soldier-like he faced the smutty rabble and flung back his high defiance!
And what a comely, sweet and gentle face he hath, now that sleep
hath conjured away its troubles and its griefs. I will teach him; I will
cure his malady; yea, I will be his elder brother, and care for him and
watch over him; and whoso would shame him or do him hurt may order his
shroud, for though I be burnt for it he shall need it!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-139" id="link12-139"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-139.jpg (110K)" src="images/12-139.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He bent over the boy and contemplated him with kind and pitying interest,
tapping the young cheek tenderly and smoothing back the tangled curls with
his great brown hand. A slight shiver passed over the boy’s
form. Hendon muttered—</p>
<p>“See, now, how like a man it was to let him lie here uncovered and
fill his body with deadly rheums. Now what shall I do? ’twill
wake him to take him up and put him within the bed, and he sorely needeth
sleep.”</p>
<p>He looked about for extra covering, but finding none, doffed his doublet
and wrapped the lad in it, saying, “I am used to nipping air and
scant apparel, ’tis little I shall mind the cold!”—then
walked up and down the room, to keep his blood in motion, soliloquising as
before.</p>
<p>“His injured mind persuades him he is Prince of Wales; ’twill
be odd to have a Prince of Wales still with us, now that he that <i>was</i>
the prince is prince no more, but king—for this poor mind is set
upon the one fantasy, and will not reason out that now it should cast by
the prince and call itself the king. . . If my father liveth still, after
these seven years that I have heard nought from home in my foreign
dungeon, he will welcome the poor lad and give him generous shelter for my
sake; so will my good elder brother, Arthur; my other brother, Hugh—but
I will crack his crown an <i>he</i> interfere, the fox-hearted,
ill-conditioned animal! Yes, thither will we fare—and straightway,
too.”</p>
<p>A servant entered with a smoking meal, disposed it upon a small deal
table, placed the chairs, and took his departure, leaving such cheap
lodgers as these to wait upon themselves. The door slammed after
him, and the noise woke the boy, who sprang to a sitting posture, and shot
a glad glance about him; then a grieved look came into his face and he
murmured to himself, with a deep sigh, “Alack, it was but a dream,
woe is me!” Next he noticed Miles Hendon’s doublet—glanced
from that to Hendon, comprehended the sacrifice that had been made for
him, and said, gently—</p>
<p>“Thou art good to me, yes, thou art very good to me. Take it
and put it on—I shall not need it more.”</p>
<p>Then he got up and walked to the washstand in the corner and stood there,
waiting. Hendon said in a cheery voice—</p>
<p>“We’ll have a right hearty sup and bite, now, for everything
is savoury and smoking hot, and that and thy nap together will make thee a
little man again, never fear!”</p>
<p>The boy made no answer, but bent a steady look, that was filled with grave
surprise, and also somewhat touched with impatience, upon the tall knight
of the sword. Hendon was puzzled, and said—</p>
<p>“What’s amiss?”</p>
<p>“Good sir, I would wash me.”</p>
<p>“Oh, is that all? Ask no permission of Miles Hendon for aught
thou cravest. Make thyself perfectly free here, and welcome, with
all that are his belongings.”</p>
<p>Still the boy stood, and moved not; more, he tapped the floor once or
twice with his small impatient foot. Hendon was wholly perplexed.
Said he—</p>
<p>“Bless us, what is it?”</p>
<p>“Prithee pour the water, and make not so many words!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-141" id="link12-141"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-141.jpg (125K)" src="images/12-141.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hendon, suppressing a horse-laugh, and saying to himself, “By all
the saints, but this is admirable!” stepped briskly forward and did
the small insolent’s bidding; then stood by, in a sort of
stupefaction, until the command, “Come—the towel!” woke
him sharply up. He took up a towel, from under the boy’s nose,
and handed it to him without comment. He now proceeded to comfort
his own face with a wash, and while he was at it his adopted child seated
himself at the table and prepared to fall to. Hendon despatched his
ablutions with alacrity, then drew back the other chair and was about to
place himself at table, when the boy said, indignantly—</p>
<p>“Forbear! Wouldst sit in the presence of the King?”</p>
<p>This blow staggered Hendon to his foundations. He muttered to
himself, “Lo, the poor thing’s madness is up with the time!
It hath changed with the great change that is come to the realm, and
now in fancy is he <i>king</i>! Good lack, I must humour the conceit, too—there
is no other way—faith, he would order me to the Tower, else!”</p>
<p>And pleased with this jest, he removed the chair from the table, took his
stand behind the King, and proceeded to wait upon him in the courtliest
way he was capable of.</p>
<p>While the King ate, the rigour of his royal dignity relaxed a little, and
with his growing contentment came a desire to talk. He said—“I
think thou callest thyself Miles Hendon, if I heard thee aright?”</p>
<p>“Yes, Sire,” Miles replied; then observed to himself, “If
I <i>must</i> humour the poor lad’s madness, I must ‘Sire’
him, I must ‘Majesty’ him, I must not go by halves, I must
stick at nothing that belongeth to the part I play, else shall I play it
ill and work evil to this charitable and kindly cause.”</p>
<p>The King warmed his heart with a second glass of wine, and said—“I
would know thee—tell me thy story. Thou hast a gallant way
with thee, and a noble—art nobly born?”</p>
<p>“We are of the tail of the nobility, good your Majesty. My
father is a baronet—one of the smaller lords by knight service {2}—Sir
Richard Hendon of Hendon Hall, by Monk’s Holm in Kent.”</p>
<p>“The name has escaped my memory. Go on—tell me thy
story.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-142" id="link12-142"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-142.jpg (102K)" src="images/12-142.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“’Tis not much, your Majesty, yet perchance it may beguile a
short half-hour for want of a better. My father, Sir Richard, is
very rich, and of a most generous nature. My mother died whilst I
was yet a boy. I have two brothers: Arthur, my elder, with a
soul like to his father’s; and Hugh, younger than I, a mean spirit,
covetous, treacherous, vicious, underhanded—a reptile. Such
was he from the cradle; such was he ten years past, when I last saw him—a
ripe rascal at nineteen, I being twenty then, and Arthur twenty-two.
There is none other of us but the Lady Edith, my cousin—she
was sixteen then—beautiful, gentle, good, the daughter of an earl,
the last of her race, heiress of a great fortune and a lapsed title.
My father was her guardian. I loved her and she loved me; but
she was betrothed to Arthur from the cradle, and Sir Richard would not
suffer the contract to be broken. Arthur loved another maid, and
bade us be of good cheer and hold fast to the hope that delay and luck
together would some day give success to our several causes. Hugh
loved the Lady Edith’s fortune, though in truth he said it was
herself he loved—but then ’twas his way, alway, to say the one
thing and mean the other. But he lost his arts upon the girl; he
could deceive my father, but none else. My father loved him best of
us all, and trusted and believed him; for he was the youngest child, and
others hated him—these qualities being in all ages sufficient to win
a parent’s dearest love; and he had a smooth persuasive tongue, with
an admirable gift of lying—and these be qualities which do mightily
assist a blind affection to cozen itself. I was wild—in troth
I might go yet farther and say <i>very</i> wild, though ’twas a
wildness of an innocent sort, since it hurt none but me, brought shame to
none, nor loss, nor had in it any taint of crime or baseness, or what
might not beseem mine honourable degree.</p>
<p>“Yet did my brother Hugh turn these faults to good account—he
seeing that our brother Arthur’s health was but indifferent, and
hoping the worst might work him profit were I swept out of the path—so—but
’twere a long tale, good my liege, and little worth the telling.
Briefly, then, this brother did deftly magnify my faults and make
them crimes; ending his base work with finding a silken ladder in mine
apartments—conveyed thither by his own means—and did convince
my father by this, and suborned evidence of servants and other lying
knaves, that I was minded to carry off my Edith and marry with her in rank
defiance of his will.</p>
<p>“Three years of banishment from home and England might make a
soldier and a man of me, my father said, and teach me some degree of
wisdom. I fought out my long probation in the continental wars,
tasting sumptuously of hard knocks, privation, and adventure; but in my
last battle I was taken captive, and during the seven years that have
waxed and waned since then, a foreign dungeon hath harboured me. Through
wit and courage I won to the free air at last, and fled hither straight;
and am but just arrived, right poor in purse and raiment, and poorer still
in knowledge of what these dull seven years have wrought at Hendon Hall,
its people and belongings. So please you, sir, my meagre tale is
told.”</p>
<p>“Thou hast been shamefully abused!” said the little King, with
a flashing eye. "But I will right thee—by the cross will I!
The King hath said it.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-145" id="link12-145"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-145.jpg (79K)" src="images/12-145.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Then, fired by the story of Miles’s wrongs, he loosed his tongue and
poured the history of his own recent misfortunes into the ears of his
astonished listener. When he had finished, Miles said to himself—</p>
<p>“Lo, what an imagination he hath! Verily, this is no common
mind; else, crazed or sane, it could not weave so straight and gaudy a
tale as this out of the airy nothings wherewith it hath wrought this
curious romaunt. Poor ruined little head, it shall not lack friend or
shelter whilst I bide with the living. He shall never leave my side;
he shall be my pet, my little comrade. And he shall be cured!—ay,
made whole and sound—then will he make himself a name—and
proud shall I be to say, ‘Yes, he is mine—I took him, a
homeless little ragamuffin, but I saw what was in him, and I said his name
would be heard some day—behold him, observe him—was I right?’”</p>
<p>The King spoke—in a thoughtful, measured voice—</p>
<p>“Thou didst save me injury and shame, perchance my life, and so my
crown. Such service demandeth rich reward. Name thy desire, and so
it be within the compass of my royal power, it is thine.”</p>
<p>This fantastic suggestion startled Hendon out of his reverie. He was
about to thank the King and put the matter aside with saying he had only
done his duty and desired no reward, but a wiser thought came into his
head, and he asked leave to be silent a few moments and consider the
gracious offer—an idea which the King gravely approved, remarking
that it was best to be not too hasty with a thing of such great import.</p>
<p>Miles reflected during some moments, then said to himself, “Yes,
that is the thing to do—by any other means it were impossible to get
at it—and certes, this hour’s experience has taught me ’twould
be most wearing and inconvenient to continue it as it is. Yes, I will
propose it; ’twas a happy accident that I did not throw the chance
away.” Then he dropped upon one knee and said—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-146" id="link12-146"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-146.jpg (100K)" src="images/12-146.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“My poor service went not beyond the limit of a subject’s
simple duty, and therefore hath no merit; but since your Majesty is
pleased to hold it worthy some reward, I take heart of grace to make
petition to this effect. Near four hundred years ago, as your grace
knoweth, there being ill blood betwixt John, King of England, and the King
of France, it was decreed that two champions should fight together in the
lists, and so settle the dispute by what is called the arbitrament of God.
These two kings, and the Spanish king, being assembled to witness
and judge the conflict, the French champion appeared; but so redoubtable
was he, that our English knights refused to measure weapons with him.
So the matter, which was a weighty one, was like to go against the
English monarch by default. Now in the Tower lay the Lord de Courcy,
the mightiest arm in England, stripped of his honours and possessions, and
wasting with long captivity. Appeal was made to him; he gave assent,
and came forth arrayed for battle; but no sooner did the Frenchman glimpse
his huge frame and hear his famous name but he fled away, and the French
king’s cause was lost. King John restored De Courcy’s
titles and possessions, and said, ‘Name thy wish and thou shalt have
it, though it cost me half my kingdom;’ whereat De Courcy, kneeling,
as I do now, made answer, ‘This, then, I ask, my liege; that I and
my successors may have and hold the privilege of remaining covered in the
presence of the kings of England, henceforth while the throne shall last.’
The boon was granted, as your Majesty knoweth; and there hath been no
time, these four hundred years, that that line has failed of an heir; and
so, even unto this day, the head of that ancient house still weareth his
hat or helm before the King’s Majesty, without let or hindrance, and
this none other may do. {3} Invoking this precedent in aid of my prayer, I
beseech the King to grant to me but this one grace and privilege—to
my more than sufficient reward—and none other, to wit: that I
and my heirs, for ever, may <i>sit</i> in the presence of the Majesty of
England!”</p>
<p>“Rise, Sir Miles Hendon, Knight,” said the King, gravely—giving
the accolade with Hendon’s sword—“rise, and seat
thyself. Thy petition is granted. Whilst England remains, and
the crown continues, the privilege shall not lapse.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link12-148" id="link12-148"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link12-148.jpg (127K)" src="images/12-148.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>His Majesty walked apart, musing, and Hendon dropped into a chair at
table, observing to himself, “’Twas a brave thought, and hath
wrought me a mighty deliverance; my legs are grievously wearied. An I had
not thought of that, I must have had to stand for weeks, till my poor lad’s
wits are cured.” After a little, he went on, “And so I
am become a knight of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows! A most odd and
strange position, truly, for one so matter-of-fact as I. I will not
laugh—no, God forbid, for this thing which is so substanceless to me
is <i>real</i> to him. And to me, also, in one way, it is not a
falsity, for it reflects with truth the sweet and generous spirit that is
in him.” After a pause: “Ah, what if he should call me
by my fine title before folk!—there’d be a merry contrast
betwixt my glory and my raiment! But no matter, let him call me what
he will, so it please him; I shall be content.”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c13" id="c13"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link13-149" id="link13-149"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link13-149.jpg (41K)" src="images/13-149.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link13-151" id="link13-151"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link13-151.jpg (124K)" src="images/13-151.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XIII. The disappearance of the Prince.</p>
<p>A heavy drowsiness presently fell upon the two comrades. The King
said—</p>
<p>“Remove these rags.”—meaning his clothing.</p>
<p>Hendon disapparelled the boy without dissent or remark, tucked him up in
bed, then glanced about the room, saying to himself, ruefully, “He
hath taken my bed again, as before—marry, what shall <i>I</i> do?”
The little King observed his perplexity, and dissipated it with a
word. He said, sleepily—</p>
<p>“Thou wilt sleep athwart the door, and guard it.” In a
moment more he was out of his troubles, in a deep slumber.</p>
<p>“Dear heart, he should have been born a king!” muttered
Hendon, admiringly; “he playeth the part to a marvel.”</p>
<p>Then he stretched himself across the door, on the floor, saying
contentedly—</p>
<p>“I have lodged worse for seven years; ’twould be but ill
gratitude to Him above to find fault with this.”</p>
<p>He dropped asleep as the dawn appeared. Toward noon he rose,
uncovered his unconscious ward—a section at a time—and took
his measure with a string. The King awoke, just as he had completed
his work, complained of the cold, and asked what he was doing.</p>
<p>“’Tis done, now, my liege,” said Hendon; “I have a
bit of business outside, but will presently return; sleep thou again—thou
needest it. There—let me cover thy head also—thou’lt be
warm the sooner.”</p>
<p>The King was back in dreamland before this speech was ended. Miles slipped
softly out, and slipped as softly in again, in the course of thirty or
forty minutes, with a complete second-hand suit of boy’s clothing,
of cheap material, and showing signs of wear; but tidy, and suited to the
season of the year. He seated himself, and began to overhaul his
purchase, mumbling to himself—</p>
<p>“A longer purse would have got a better sort, but when one has not
the long purse one must be content with what a short one may do—</p>
<p>“‘There was a woman in our town, <br/>In our town did dwell—’</p>
<p><SPAN name="link13-153" id="link13-153"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link13-153.jpg (83K)" src="images/13-153.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“He stirred, methinks—I must sing in a less thunderous key;
’tis not good to mar his sleep, with this journey before him, and he
so wearied out, poor chap . . . This garment—’tis well enough—a
stitch here and another one there will set it aright. This other is
better, albeit a stitch or two will not come amiss in it, likewise . . .
<i>These</i> be very good and sound, and will keep his small feet warm and
dry—an odd new thing to him, belike, since he has doubtless been
used to foot it bare, winters and summers the same . . . Would thread were
bread, seeing one getteth a year’s sufficiency for a farthing, and
such a brave big needle without cost, for mere love. Now shall I
have the demon’s own time to thread it!”</p>
<p>And so he had. He did as men have always done, and probably always
will do, to the end of time—held the needle still, and tried to
thrust the thread through the eye, which is the opposite of a woman’s
way. Time and time again the thread missed the mark, going sometimes
on one side of the needle, sometimes on the other, sometimes doubling up
against the shaft; but he was patient, having been through these
experiences before, when he was soldiering. He succeeded at last,
and took up the garment that had lain waiting, meantime, across his lap,
and began his work.</p>
<p>“The inn is paid—the breakfast that is to come, included—and
there is wherewithal left to buy a couple of donkeys and meet our little
costs for the two or three days betwixt this and the plenty that awaits us
at Hendon Hall—</p>
<p>“‘She loved her hus—’</p>
<p>“Body o’ me! I have driven the needle under my nail! . .
. It matters little—’tis not a novelty—yet ’tis
not a convenience, neither. . . . We shall be merry there, little one,
never doubt it! Thy troubles will vanish there, and likewise thy sad
distemper—</p>
<p>“‘She loved her husband dearilee, <br/>But another man—’</p>
<p>“These be noble large stitches!”—holding the garment up
and viewing it admiringly—“they have a grandeur and a majesty
that do cause these small stingy ones of the tailor-man to look mightily
paltry and plebeian—</p>
<p>“‘She loved her husband dearilee, <br/>But another man he
loved she,—’</p>
<p>“Marry, ’tis done—a goodly piece of work, too, and
wrought with expedition. Now will I wake him, apparel him, pour for
him, feed him, and then will we hie us to the mart by the Tabard Inn in
Southwark and—be pleased to rise, my liege!—he answereth not—what
ho, my liege!—of a truth must I profane his sacred person with a
touch, sith his slumber is deaf to speech. What!”</p>
<p>He threw back the covers—the boy was gone!</p>
<p>He stared about him in speechless astonishment for a moment; noticed for
the first time that his ward’s ragged raiment was also missing; then
he began to rage and storm and shout for the innkeeper. At that
moment a servant entered with the breakfast.</p>
<p>“Explain, thou limb of Satan, or thy time is come!” roared the
man of war, and made so savage a spring toward the waiter that this latter
could not find his tongue, for the instant, for fright and surprise.
"Where is the boy?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link13-155" id="link13-155"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link13-155.jpg (157K)" src="images/13-155.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>In disjointed and trembling syllables the man gave the information
desired.</p>
<p>“You were hardly gone from the place, your worship, when a youth
came running and said it was your worship’s will that the boy come
to you straight, at the bridge-end on the Southwark side. I brought
him hither; and when he woke the lad and gave his message, the lad did
grumble some little for being disturbed ‘so early,’ as he
called it, but straightway trussed on his rags and went with the youth,
only saying it had been better manners that your worship came yourself,
not sent a stranger—and so—”</p>
<p>“And so thou’rt a fool!—a fool and easily cozened—hang
all thy breed! Yet mayhap no hurt is done. Possibly no harm is meant
the boy. I will go fetch him. Make the table ready. Stay!
the coverings of the bed were disposed as if one lay beneath them—happened
that by accident?”</p>
<p>“I know not, good your worship. I saw the youth meddle with
them—he that came for the boy.”</p>
<p>“Thousand deaths! ’Twas done to deceive me—’tis
plain ’twas done to gain time. Hark ye! Was that youth
alone?”</p>
<p>“All alone, your worship.”</p>
<p>“Art sure?”</p>
<p>“Sure, your worship.”</p>
<p>“Collect thy scattered wits—bethink thee—take time, man.”</p>
<p>After a moment’s thought, the servant said—</p>
<p>“When he came, none came with him; but now I remember me that as the
two stepped into the throng of the Bridge, a ruffian-looking man plunged
out from some near place; and just as he was joining them—”</p>
<p>“What <i>then</i>?—out with it!” thundered the impatient
Hendon, interrupting.</p>
<p>“Just then the crowd lapped them up and closed them in, and I saw no
more, being called by my master, who was in a rage because a joint that
the scrivener had ordered was forgot, though I take all the saints to
witness that to blame <i>me</i> for that miscarriage were like holding the
unborn babe to judgment for sins com—”</p>
<p>“Out of my sight, idiot! Thy prating drives me mad! Hold!
Whither art flying? Canst not bide still an instant? Went they
toward Southwark?”</p>
<p>“Even so, your worship—for, as I said before, as to that
detestable joint, the babe unborn is no whit more blameless than—”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link13-156" id="link13-156"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link13-156.jpg (77K)" src="images/13-156.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Art here <i>yet</i>! And prating still! Vanish, lest I
throttle thee!” The servitor vanished. Hendon followed after
him, passed him, and plunged down the stairs two steps at a stride,
muttering, “’Tis that scurvy villain that claimed he was his
son. I have lost thee, my poor little mad master—it is a
bitter thought—and I had come to love thee so! No! by book and
bell, <i>not</i> lost! Not lost, for I will ransack the land till I
find thee again. Poor child, yonder is his breakfast—and mine,
but I have no hunger now; so, let the rats have it—speed, speed!
that is the word!” As he wormed his swift way through the
noisy multitudes upon the Bridge he several times said to himself—clinging
to the thought as if it were a particularly pleasing one—“He
grumbled, but he <i>went</i>—he went, yes, because he thought Miles
Hendon asked it, sweet lad—he would ne’er have done it for
another, I know it well.”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c14" id="c14"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link14-159" id="link14-159"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-159.jpg (78K)" src="images/14-159.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/> <br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XIV. ‘Le Roi est mort—vive le Roi.’</p>
<p>Toward daylight of the same morning, Tom Canty stirred out of a heavy
sleep and opened his eyes in the dark. He lay silent a few moments,
trying to analyse his confused thoughts and impressions, and get some sort
of meaning out of them; then suddenly he burst out in a rapturous but
guarded voice—</p>
<p>“I see it all, I see it all! Now God be thanked, I am indeed
awake at last! Come, joy! vanish, sorrow! Ho, Nan! Bet! kick
off your straw and hie ye hither to my side, till I do pour into your
unbelieving ears the wildest madcap dream that ever the spirits of night
did conjure up to astonish the soul of man withal! . . . Ho, Nan, I say!
Bet!”</p>
<p>A dim form appeared at his side, and a voice said—</p>
<p>“Wilt deign to deliver thy commands?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link14-162" id="link14-162"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-162.jpg (99K)" src="images/14-162.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Commands? . . . O, woe is me, I know thy voice! Speak thou—who
am I?”</p>
<p>“Thou? In sooth, yesternight wert thou the Prince of Wales;
to-day art thou my most gracious liege, Edward, King of England.”</p>
<p>Tom buried his head among his pillows, murmuring plaintively—</p>
<p>“Alack, it was no dream! Go to thy rest, sweet sir—leave
me to my sorrows.”</p>
<p>Tom slept again, and after a time he had this pleasant dream. He
thought it was summer, and he was playing, all alone, in the fair meadow
called Goodman’s Fields, when a dwarf only a foot high, with long
red whiskers and a humped back, appeared to him suddenly and said, “Dig
by that stump.” He did so, and found twelve bright new pennies—wonderful
riches! Yet this was not the best of it; for the dwarf said—</p>
<p>“I know thee. Thou art a good lad, and a deserving; thy
distresses shall end, for the day of thy reward is come. Dig here
every seventh day, and thou shalt find always the same treasure, twelve
bright new pennies. Tell none—keep the secret.”</p>
<p>Then the dwarf vanished, and Tom flew to Offal Court with his prize,
saying to himself, “Every night will I give my father a penny; he
will think I begged it, it will glad his heart, and I shall no more be
beaten. One penny every week the good priest that teacheth me shall have;
mother, Nan, and Bet the other four. We be done with hunger and rags, now,
done with fears and frets and savage usage.”</p>
<p>In his dream he reached his sordid home all out of breath, but with eyes
dancing with grateful enthusiasm; cast four of his pennies into his mother’s
lap and cried out—</p>
<p>“They are for thee!—all of them, every one!—for thee and
Nan and Bet—and honestly come by, not begged nor stolen!”</p>
<p>The happy and astonished mother strained him to her breast and exclaimed—</p>
<p>“It waxeth late—may it please your Majesty to rise?”</p>
<p>Ah! that was not the answer he was expecting. The dream had snapped
asunder—he was awake.</p>
<p>He opened his eyes—the richly clad First Lord of the Bedchamber was
kneeling by his couch. The gladness of the lying dream faded away—the
poor boy recognised that he was still a captive and a king. The room
was filled with courtiers clothed in purple mantles—the mourning
colour—and with noble servants of the monarch. Tom sat up in
bed and gazed out from the heavy silken curtains upon this fine company.</p>
<p>The weighty business of dressing began, and one courtier after another
knelt and paid his court and offered to the little King his condolences
upon his heavy loss, whilst the dressing proceeded. In the
beginning, a shirt was taken up by the Chief Equerry in Waiting, who
passed it to the First Lord of the Buckhounds, who passed it to the Second
Gentleman of the Bedchamber, who passed it to the Head Ranger of Windsor
Forest, who passed it to the Third Groom of the Stole, who passed it to
the Chancellor Royal of the Duchy of Lancaster, who passed it to the
Master of the Wardrobe, who passed it to Norroy King-at-Arms, who passed
it to the Constable of the Tower, who passed it to the Chief Steward of
the Household, who passed it to the Hereditary Grand Diaperer, who passed
it to the Lord High Admiral of England, who passed it to the Archbishop of
Canterbury, who passed it to the First Lord of the Bedchamber, who took
what was left of it and put it on Tom. Poor little wondering chap,
it reminded him of passing buckets at a fire.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link14-164" id="link14-164"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-164.jpg (59K)" src="images/14-164.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Each garment in its turn had to go through this slow and solemn process;
consequently Tom grew very weary of the ceremony; so weary that he felt an
almost gushing gratefulness when he at last saw his long silken hose begin
the journey down the line and knew that the end of the matter was drawing
near. But he exulted too soon. The First Lord of the
Bedchamber received the hose and was about to encase Tom’s legs in
them, when a sudden flush invaded his face and he hurriedly hustled the
things back into the hands of the Archbishop of Canterbury with an
astounded look and a whispered, “See, my lord!” pointing to a
something connected with the hose. The Archbishop paled, then
flushed, and passed the hose to the Lord High Admiral, whispering, “See,
my lord!” The Admiral passed the hose to the Hereditary Grand
Diaperer, and had hardly breath enough in his body to ejaculate, “See,
my lord!” The hose drifted backward along the line, to the
Chief Steward of the Household, the Constable of the Tower, Norroy
King-at-Arms, the Master of the Wardrobe, the Chancellor Royal of the
Duchy of Lancaster, the Third Groom of the Stole, the Head Ranger of
Windsor Forest, the Second Gentleman of the Bedchamber, the First Lord of
the Buckhounds,—accompanied always with that amazed and frightened
“See! see!”—till they finally reached the hands of the
Chief Equerry in Waiting, who gazed a moment, with a pallid face, upon
what had caused all this dismay, then hoarsely whispered, “Body of
my life, a tag gone from a truss-point!—to the Tower with the Head
Keeper of the King’s Hose!”—after which he leaned upon
the shoulder of the First Lord of the Buckhounds to regather his vanished
strength whilst fresh hose, without any damaged strings to them, were
brought.</p>
<p>But all things must have an end, and so in time Tom Canty was in a
condition to get out of bed. The proper official poured water, the
proper official engineered the washing, the proper official stood by with
a towel, and by-and-by Tom got safely through the purifying stage and was
ready for the services of the Hairdresser-royal. When he at length
emerged from this master’s hands, he was a gracious figure and as
pretty as a girl, in his mantle and trunks of purple satin, and
purple-plumed cap. He now moved in state toward his breakfast-room,
through the midst of the courtly assemblage; and as he passed, these fell
back, leaving his way free, and dropped upon their knees.</p>
<p>After breakfast he was conducted, with regal ceremony, attended by his
great officers and his guard of fifty Gentlemen Pensioners bearing gilt
battle-axes, to the throne-room, where he proceeded to transact business
of state. His ‘uncle,’ Lord Hertford, took his stand by
the throne, to assist the royal mind with wise counsel.</p>
<p>The body of illustrious men named by the late King as his executors
appeared, to ask Tom’s approval of certain acts of theirs—rather
a form, and yet not wholly a form, since there was no Protector as yet.
The Archbishop of Canterbury made report of the decree of the
Council of Executors concerning the obsequies of his late most illustrious
Majesty, and finished by reading the signatures of the Executors, to wit:
the Archbishop of Canterbury; the Lord Chancellor of England;
William Lord St. John; John Lord Russell; Edward Earl of Hertford; John
Viscount Lisle; Cuthbert Bishop of Durham—</p>
<p>Tom was not listening—an earlier clause of the document was puzzling
him. At this point he turned and whispered to Lord Hertford—</p>
<p>“What day did he say the burial hath been appointed for?”</p>
<p>“The sixteenth of the coming month, my liege.”</p>
<p>“’Tis a strange folly. Will he keep?”</p>
<p>Poor chap, he was still new to the customs of royalty; he was used to
seeing the forlorn dead of Offal Court hustled out of the way with a very
different sort of expedition. However, the Lord Hertford set his
mind at rest with a word or two.</p>
<p>A secretary of state presented an order of the Council appointing the
morrow at eleven for the reception of the foreign ambassadors, and desired
the King’s assent.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link14-166" id="link14-166"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-166.jpg (136K)" src="images/14-166.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Tom turned an inquiring look toward Hertford, who whispered—</p>
<p>“Your Majesty will signify consent. They come to testify their
royal masters’ sense of the heavy calamity which hath visited your
Grace and the realm of England.”</p>
<p>Tom did as he was bidden. Another secretary began to read a preamble
concerning the expenses of the late King’s household, which had
amounted to 28,000 pounds during the preceding six months—a sum so
vast that it made Tom Canty gasp; he gasped again when the fact appeared
that 20,000 pounds of this money was still owing and unpaid; {4} and once
more when it appeared that the King’s coffers were about empty, and
his twelve hundred servants much embarrassed for lack of the wages due
them. Tom spoke out, with lively apprehension—</p>
<p>“We be going to the dogs, ’tis plain. ’Tis meet
and necessary that we take a smaller house and set the servants at large,
sith they be of no value but to make delay, and trouble one with offices
that harass the spirit and shame the soul, they misbecoming any but a
doll, that hath nor brains nor hands to help itself withal. I
remember me of a small house that standeth over against the fish-market,
by Billingsgate—”</p>
<p>A sharp pressure upon Tom’s arm stopped his foolish tongue and sent
a blush to his face; but no countenance there betrayed any sign that this
strange speech had been remarked or given concern.</p>
<p>A secretary made report that forasmuch as the late King had provided in
his will for conferring the ducal degree upon the Earl of Hertford and
raising his brother, Sir Thomas Seymour, to the peerage, and likewise
Hertford’s son to an earldom, together with similar aggrandisements
to other great servants of the Crown, the Council had resolved to hold a
sitting on the 16th of February for the delivering and confirming of these
honours, and that meantime, the late King not having granted, in writing,
estates suitable to the support of these dignities, the Council, knowing
his private wishes in that regard, had thought proper to grant to Seymour
‘500 pound lands,’ and to Hertford’s son ‘800
pound lands, and 300 pound of the next bishop’s lands which should
fall vacant,’—his present Majesty being willing. {5}</p>
<p>Tom was about to blurt out something about the propriety of paying the
late King’s debts first, before squandering all this money, but a
timely touch upon his arm, from the thoughtful Hertford, saved him this
indiscretion; wherefore he gave the royal assent, without spoken comment,
but with much inward discomfort. While he sat reflecting a moment
over the ease with which he was doing strange and glittering miracles, a
happy thought shot into his mind: why not make his mother Duchess of
Offal Court, and give her an estate? But a sorrowful thought swept
it instantly away: he was only a king in name, these grave veterans and
great nobles were his masters; to them his mother was only the creature of
a diseased mind; they would simply listen to his project with unbelieving
ears, then send for the doctor.</p>
<p>The dull work went tediously on. Petitions were read, and
proclamations, patents, and all manner of wordy, repetitious, and
wearisome papers relating to the public business; and at last Tom sighed
pathetically and murmured to himself, “In what have I offended, that
the good God should take me away from the fields and the free air and the
sunshine, to shut me up here and make me a king and afflict me so?”
Then his poor muddled head nodded a while and presently drooped to
his shoulder; and the business of the empire came to a standstill for want
of that august factor, the ratifying power. Silence ensued around
the slumbering child, and the sages of the realm ceased from their
deliberations.</p>
<p>During the forenoon, Tom had an enjoyable hour, by permission of his
keepers, Hertford and St. John, with the Lady Elizabeth and the little
Lady Jane Grey; though the spirits of the princesses were rather subdued
by the mighty stroke that had fallen upon the royal house; and at the end
of the visit his ‘elder sister’—afterwards the ‘Bloody
Mary’ of history—chilled him with a solemn interview which had
but one merit in his eyes, its brevity. He had a few moments to
himself, and then a slim lad of about twelve years of age was admitted to
his presence, whose clothing, except his snowy ruff and the laces about
his wrists, was of black,—doublet, hose, and all. He bore no
badge of mourning but a knot of purple ribbon on his shoulder. He
advanced hesitatingly, with head bowed and bare, and dropped upon one knee
in front of Tom. Tom sat still and contemplated him soberly a moment.
Then he said—</p>
<p>“Rise, lad. Who art thou. What wouldst have?”</p>
<p>The boy rose, and stood at graceful ease, but with an aspect of concern in
his face. He said—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link14-170" id="link14-170"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-170.jpg (101K)" src="images/14-170.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Of a surety thou must remember me, my lord. I am thy
whipping-boy.”</p>
<p>“My <i>whipping</i>-boy?”</p>
<p>“The same, your Grace. I am Humphrey—Humphrey Marlow.”</p>
<p>Tom perceived that here was someone whom his keepers ought to have posted
him about. The situation was delicate. What should he do?—pretend
he knew this lad, and then betray by his every utterance that he had never
heard of him before? No, that would not do. An idea came to
his relief: accidents like this might be likely to happen with some
frequency, now that business urgencies would often call Hertford and St.
John from his side, they being members of the Council of Executors;
therefore perhaps it would be well to strike out a plan himself to meet
the requirements of such emergencies. Yes, that would be a wise
course—he would practise on this boy, and see what sort of success
he might achieve. So he stroked his brow perplexedly a moment or
two, and presently said—</p>
<p>“Now I seem to remember thee somewhat—but my wit is clogged
and dim with suffering—”</p>
<p>“Alack, my poor master!” ejaculated the whipping-boy, with
feeling; adding, to himself, “In truth ’tis as they said—his
mind is gone—alas, poor soul! But misfortune catch me, how am
I forgetting! They said one must not seem to observe that aught is
wrong with him.”</p>
<p>“’Tis strange how my memory doth wanton with me these days,”
said Tom. “But mind it not—I mend apace—a little clue
doth often serve to bring me back again the things and names which had
escaped me. (And not they, only, forsooth, but e’en such as I
ne’er heard before—as this lad shall see.) Give thy
business speech.”</p>
<p>“’Tis matter of small weight, my liege, yet will I touch upon
it, an’ it please your Grace. Two days gone by, when your
Majesty faulted thrice in your Greek—in the morning lessons,—dost
remember it?”</p>
<p>“Y-e-s—methinks I do. (It is not much of a lie—an’
I had meddled with the Greek at all, I had not faulted simply thrice, but
forty times.) Yes, I do recall it, now—go on.”</p>
<p>“The master, being wroth with what he termed such slovenly and
doltish work, did promise that he would soundly whip me for it—and—”</p>
<p>“Whip <i>thee</i>!” said Tom, astonished out of his presence
of mind. “Why should he whip <i>thee</i> for faults of mine?”</p>
<p>“Ah, your Grace forgetteth again. He always scourgeth me when
thou dost fail in thy lessons.”</p>
<p>“True, true—I had forgot. Thou teachest me in private—then
if I fail, he argueth that thy office was lamely done, and—”</p>
<p>“Oh, my liege, what words are these? I, the humblest of thy
servants, presume to teach <i>thee</i>?”</p>
<p>“Then where is thy blame? What riddle is this? Am I in
truth gone mad, or is it thou? Explain—speak out.”</p>
<p>“But, good your Majesty, there’s nought that needeth
simplifying.—None may visit the sacred person of the Prince of Wales
with blows; wherefore, when he faulteth, ’tis I that take them; and
meet it is and right, for that it is mine office and my livelihood.”
{1}</p>
<p><SPAN name="link14-172" id="link14-172"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-172.jpg (84K)" src="images/14-172.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Tom stared at the tranquil boy, observing to himself, “Lo, it is a
wonderful thing,—a most strange and curious trade; I marvel they
have not hired a boy to take my combings and my dressings for me—would
heaven they would!—an’ they will do this thing, I will take my
lashings in mine own person, giving God thanks for the change.” Then
he said aloud—</p>
<p>“And hast thou been beaten, poor friend, according to the promise?”</p>
<p>“No, good your Majesty, my punishment was appointed for this day,
and peradventure it may be annulled, as unbefitting the season of mourning
that is come upon us; I know not, and so have made bold to come hither and
remind your Grace about your gracious promise to intercede in my behalf—”</p>
<p>“With the master? To save thee thy whipping?”</p>
<p>“Ah, thou dost remember!”</p>
<p>“My memory mendeth, thou seest. Set thy mind at ease—thy
back shall go unscathed—I will see to it.”</p>
<p>“Oh, thanks, my good lord!” cried the boy, dropping upon his
knee again. “Mayhap I have ventured far enow; and yet—”</p>
<p>Seeing Master Humphrey hesitate, Tom encouraged him to go on, saying he
was “in the granting mood.”</p>
<p>“Then will I speak it out, for it lieth near my heart. Sith
thou art no more Prince of Wales but King, thou canst order matters as
thou wilt, with none to say thee nay; wherefore it is not in reason that
thou wilt longer vex thyself with dreary studies, but wilt burn thy books
and turn thy mind to things less irksome. Then am I ruined, and mine
orphan sisters with me!”</p>
<p>“Ruined? Prithee how?”</p>
<p>“My back is my bread, O my gracious liege! if it go idle, I starve.
An’ thou cease from study mine office is gone thou’lt
need no whipping-boy. Do not turn me away!”</p>
<p>Tom was touched with this pathetic distress. He said, with a right
royal burst of generosity—</p>
<p>“Discomfort thyself no further, lad. Thine office shall be
permanent in thee and thy line for ever.” Then he struck the
boy a light blow on the shoulder with the flat of his sword, exclaiming,
“Rise, Humphrey Marlow, Hereditary Grand Whipping-Boy to the Royal
House of England! Banish sorrow—I will betake me to my books
again, and study so ill that they must in justice treble thy wage, so
mightily shall the business of thine office be augmented.”</p>
<p>The grateful Humphrey responded fervidly—</p>
<p>“Thanks, O most noble master, this princely lavishness doth far
surpass my most distempered dreams of fortune. Now shall I be happy
all my days, and all the house of Marlow after me.”</p>
<p>Tom had wit enough to perceive that here was a lad who could be useful to
him. He encouraged Humphrey to talk, and he was nothing loath.
He was delighted to believe that he was helping in Tom’s
‘cure’; for always, as soon as he had finished calling back to
Tom’s diseased mind the various particulars of his experiences and
adventures in the royal school-room and elsewhere about the palace, he
noticed that Tom was then able to ‘recall’ the circumstances
quite clearly. At the end of an hour Tom found himself well
freighted with very valuable information concerning personages and matters
pertaining to the Court; so he resolved to draw instruction from this
source daily; and to this end he would give order to admit Humphrey to the
royal closet whenever he might come, provided the Majesty of England was
not engaged with other people. Humphrey had hardly been dismissed
when my Lord Hertford arrived with more trouble for Tom.</p>
<p>He said that the Lords of the Council, fearing that some overwrought
report of the King’s damaged health might have leaked out and got
abroad, they deemed it wise and best that his Majesty should begin to dine
in public after a day or two—his wholesome complexion and vigorous
step, assisted by a carefully guarded repose of manner and ease and grace
of demeanour, would more surely quiet the general pulse—in case any
evil rumours <i>had</i> gone about—than any other scheme that could
be devised.</p>
<p>Then the Earl proceeded, very delicately, to instruct Tom as to the
observances proper to the stately occasion, under the rather thin disguise
of ‘reminding’ him concerning things already known to him; but
to his vast gratification it turned out that Tom needed very little help
in this line—he had been making use of Humphrey in that direction,
for Humphrey had mentioned that within a few days he was to begin to dine
in public; having gathered it from the swift-winged gossip of the Court.
Tom kept these facts to himself, however.</p>
<p>Seeing the royal memory so improved, the Earl ventured to apply a few
tests to it, in an apparently casual way, to find out how far its
amendment had progressed. The results were happy, here and there, in
spots—spots where Humphrey’s tracks remained—and on the
whole my lord was greatly pleased and encouraged. So encouraged was
he, indeed, that he spoke up and said in a quite hopeful voice—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link14-175" id="link14-175"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link14-175.jpg (98K)" src="images/14-175.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Now am I persuaded that if your Majesty will but tax your memory
yet a little further, it will resolve the puzzle of the Great Seal—a
loss which was of moment yesterday, although of none to-day, since its
term of service ended with our late lord’s life. May it please your
Grace to make the trial?”</p>
<p>Tom was at sea—a Great Seal was something which he was totally
unacquainted with. After a moment’s hesitation he looked up
innocently and asked—</p>
<p>“What was it like, my lord?”</p>
<p>The Earl started, almost imperceptibly, muttering to himself, “Alack,
his wits are flown again!—it was ill wisdom to lead him on to strain
them”—then he deftly turned the talk to other matters, with
the purpose of sweeping the unlucky seal out of Tom’s thoughts—a
purpose which easily succeeded.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c15" id="c15"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link15-177" id="link15-177"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link15-177.jpg (56K)" src="images/15-177.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XV. Tom as King.</p>
<p>The next day the foreign ambassadors came, with their gorgeous trains; and
Tom, throned in awful state, received them. The splendours of the
scene delighted his eye and fired his imagination at first, but the
audience was long and dreary, and so were most of the addresses—wherefore,
what began as a pleasure grew into weariness and home-sickness by-and-by.
Tom said the words which Hertford put into his mouth from time to
time, and tried hard to acquit himself satisfactorily, but he was too new
to such things, and too ill at ease to accomplish more than a tolerable
success. He looked sufficiently like a king, but he was ill able to
feel like one. He was cordially glad when the ceremony was ended.</p>
<p>The larger part of his day was ‘wasted’—as he termed it,
in his own mind—in labours pertaining to his royal office. Even
the two hours devoted to certain princely pastimes and recreations were
rather a burden to him than otherwise, they were so fettered by
restrictions and ceremonious observances. However, he had a private
hour with his whipping-boy which he counted clear gain, since he got both
entertainment and needful information out of it.</p>
<p>The third day of Tom Canty’s kingship came and went much as the
others had done, but there was a lifting of his cloud in one way—he
felt less uncomfortable than at first; he was getting a little used to his
circumstances and surroundings; his chains still galled, but not all the
time; he found that the presence and homage of the great afflicted and
embarrassed him less and less sharply with every hour that drifted over
his head.</p>
<p>But for one single dread, he could have seen the fourth day approach
without serious distress—the dining in public; it was to begin that
day. There were greater matters in the programme—for on that day he
would have to preside at a council which would take his views and commands
concerning the policy to be pursued toward various foreign nations
scattered far and near over the great globe; on that day, too, Hertford
would be formally chosen to the grand office of Lord Protector; other
things of note were appointed for that fourth day, also; but to Tom they
were all insignificant compared with the ordeal of dining all by himself
with a multitude of curious eyes fastened upon him and a multitude of
mouths whispering comments upon his performance,—and upon his
mistakes, if he should be so unlucky as to make any.</p>
<p>Still, nothing could stop that fourth day, and so it came. It found
poor Tom low-spirited and absent-minded, and this mood continued; he could
not shake it off. The ordinary duties of the morning dragged upon
his hands, and wearied him. Once more he felt the sense of captivity
heavy upon him.</p>
<p>Late in the forenoon he was in a large audience-chamber, conversing with
the Earl of Hertford and dully awaiting the striking of the hour appointed
for a visit of ceremony from a considerable number of great officials and
courtiers.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link15-181" id="link15-181"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link15-181.jpg (53K)" src="images/15-181.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>After a little while, Tom, who had wandered to a window and become
interested in the life and movement of the great highway beyond the palace
gates—and not idly interested, but longing with all his heart to
take part in person in its stir and freedom—saw the van of a hooting
and shouting mob of disorderly men, women, and children of the lowest and
poorest degree approaching from up the road.</p>
<p>“I would I knew what ’tis about!” he exclaimed, with all
a boy’s curiosity in such happenings.</p>
<p>“Thou art the King!” solemnly responded the Earl, with a
reverence. “Have I your Grace’s leave to act?”</p>
<p>“O blithely, yes! O gladly, yes!” exclaimed Tom
excitedly, adding to himself with a lively sense of satisfaction, “In
truth, being a king is not all dreariness—it hath its compensations
and conveniences.”</p>
<p>The Earl called a page, and sent him to the captain of the guard with the
order—</p>
<p>“Let the mob be halted, and inquiry made concerning the occasion of
its movement. By the King’s command!”</p>
<p>A few seconds later a long rank of the royal guards, cased in flashing
steel, filed out at the gates and formed across the highway in front of
the multitude. A messenger returned, to report that the crowd were
following a man, a woman, and a young girl to execution for crimes
committed against the peace and dignity of the realm.</p>
<p>Death—and a violent death—for these poor unfortunates! The
thought wrung Tom’s heart-strings. The spirit of compassion
took control of him, to the exclusion of all other considerations; he
never thought of the offended laws, or of the grief or loss which these
three criminals had inflicted upon their victims; he could think of
nothing but the scaffold and the grisly fate hanging over the heads of the
condemned. His concern made him even forget, for the moment, that he
was but the false shadow of a king, not the substance; and before he knew
it he had blurted out the command—</p>
<p>“Bring them here!”</p>
<p>Then he blushed scarlet, and a sort of apology sprung to his lips; but
observing that his order had wrought no sort of surprise in the Earl or
the waiting page, he suppressed the words he was about to utter. The
page, in the most matter-of-course way, made a profound obeisance and
retired backwards out of the room to deliver the command. Tom
experienced a glow of pride and a renewed sense of the compensating
advantages of the kingly office. He said to himself, “Truly it is
like what I was used to feel when I read the old priest’s tales, and
did imagine mine own self a prince, giving law and command to all, saying
‘Do this, do that,’ whilst none durst offer let or hindrance
to my will.”</p>
<p>Now the doors swung open; one high-sounding title after another was
announced, the personages owning them followed, and the place was quickly
half-filled with noble folk and finery. But Tom was hardly conscious
of the presence of these people, so wrought up was he and so intensely
absorbed in that other and more interesting matter. He seated
himself absently in his chair of state, and turned his eyes upon the door
with manifestations of impatient expectancy; seeing which, the company
forbore to trouble him, and fell to chatting a mixture of public business
and court gossip one with another.</p>
<p>In a little while the measured tread of military men was heard
approaching, and the culprits entered the presence in charge of an
under-sheriff and escorted by a detail of the king’s guard. The
civil officer knelt before Tom, then stood aside; the three doomed persons
knelt, also, and remained so; the guard took position behind Tom’s
chair. Tom scanned the prisoners curiously. Something about the
dress or appearance of the man had stirred a vague memory in him. "Methinks
I have seen this man ere now . . . but the when or the where fail me.”—Such
was Tom’s thought. Just then the man glanced quickly up and quickly
dropped his face again, not being able to endure the awful port of
sovereignty; but the one full glimpse of the face which Tom got was
sufficient. He said to himself: “Now is the matter clear; this
is the stranger that plucked Giles Witt out of the Thames, and saved his
life, that windy, bitter, first day of the New Year—a brave good
deed—pity he hath been doing baser ones and got himself in this sad
case . . . I have not forgot the day, neither the hour; by reason that an
hour after, upon the stroke of eleven, I did get a hiding by the hand of
Gammer Canty which was of so goodly and admired severity that all that
went before or followed after it were but fondlings and caresses by
comparison.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link15-183" id="link15-183"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link15-183.jpg (176K)" src="images/15-183.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Tom now ordered that the woman and the girl be removed from the presence
for a little time; then addressed himself to the under-sheriff, saying—</p>
<p>“Good sir, what is this man’s offence?”</p>
<p>The officer knelt, and answered—</p>
<p>“So please your Majesty, he hath taken the life of a subject by
poison.”</p>
<p>Tom’s compassion for the prisoner, and admiration of him as the
daring rescuer of a drowning boy, experienced a most damaging shock.</p>
<p>“The thing was proven upon him?” he asked.</p>
<p>“Most clearly, sire.”</p>
<p>Tom sighed, and said—</p>
<p>“Take him away—he hath earned his death. ’Tis a
pity, for he was a brave heart—na—na, I mean he hath the <i>look</i>
of it!”</p>
<p>The prisoner clasped his hands together with sudden energy, and wrung them
despairingly, at the same time appealing imploringly to the ‘King’
in broken and terrified phrases—</p>
<p>“O my lord the King, an’ thou canst pity the lost, have pity
upon me! I am innocent—neither hath that wherewith I am
charged been more than but lamely proved—yet I speak not of that;
the judgment is gone forth against me and may not suffer alteration; yet
in mine extremity I beg a boon, for my doom is more than I can bear. A
grace, a grace, my lord the King! in thy royal compassion grant my prayer—give
commandment that I be hanged!”</p>
<p>Tom was amazed. This was not the outcome he had looked for.</p>
<p>“Odds my life, a strange <i>boon</i>! Was it not the fate
intended thee?”</p>
<p>“O good my liege, not so! It is ordered that I be <i>boiled
alive</i>!”</p>
<p>The hideous surprise of these words almost made Tom spring from his chair.
As soon as he could recover his wits he cried out—</p>
<p>“Have thy wish, poor soul! an’ thou had poisoned a hundred men
thou shouldst not suffer so miserable a death.”</p>
<p>The prisoner bowed his face to the ground and burst into passionate
expressions of gratitude—ending with—</p>
<p>“If ever thou shouldst know misfortune—which God forefend!—may
thy goodness to me this day be remembered and requited!”</p>
<p>Tom turned to the Earl of Hertford, and said—</p>
<p>“My lord, is it believable that there was warrant for this man’s
ferocious doom?”</p>
<p>“It is the law, your Grace—for poisoners. In Germany
coiners be boiled to death in <i>oil</i>—not cast in of a sudden,
but by a rope let down into the oil by degrees, and slowly; first the
feet, then the legs, then—”</p>
<p>“O prithee no more, my lord, I cannot bear it!” cried Tom,
covering his eyes with his hands to shut out the picture. "I beseech
your good lordship that order be taken to change this law—oh, let no
more poor creatures be visited with its tortures.”</p>
<p>The Earl’s face showed profound gratification, for he was a man of
merciful and generous impulses—a thing not very common with his
class in that fierce age. He said—</p>
<p>“These your Grace’s noble words have sealed its doom. History
will remember it to the honour of your royal house.”</p>
<p>The under-sheriff was about to remove his prisoner; Tom gave him a sign to
wait; then he said—</p>
<p>“Good sir, I would look into this matter further. The man has
said his deed was but lamely proved. Tell me what thou knowest.”</p>
<p>“If the King’s grace please, it did appear upon the trial that
this man entered into a house in the hamlet of Islington where one lay
sick—three witnesses say it was at ten of the clock in the morning,
and two say it was some minutes later—the sick man being alone at
the time, and sleeping—and presently the man came forth again and
went his way. The sick man died within the hour, being torn with
spasms and retchings.”</p>
<p>“Did any see the poison given? Was poison found?”</p>
<p>“Marry, no, my liege.”</p>
<p>“Then how doth one know there was poison given at all?”</p>
<p>“Please your Majesty, the doctors testified that none die with such
symptoms but by poison.”</p>
<p>Weighty evidence, this, in that simple age. Tom recognised its
formidable nature, and said—</p>
<p>“The doctor knoweth his trade—belike they were right. The
matter hath an ill-look for this poor man.”</p>
<p>“Yet was not this all, your Majesty; there is more and worse. Many
testified that a witch, since gone from the village, none know whither,
did foretell, and speak it privately in their ears, that the sick man <i>would
die by poison</i>—and more, that a stranger would give it—a
stranger with brown hair and clothed in a worn and common garb; and surely
this prisoner doth answer woundily to the bill. Please your Majesty
to give the circumstance that solemn weight which is its due, seeing it
was <i>foretold</i>.”</p>
<p>This was an argument of tremendous force in that superstitious day. Tom
felt that the thing was settled; if evidence was worth anything, this poor
fellow’s guilt was proved. Still he offered the prisoner a
chance, saying—</p>
<p>“If thou canst say aught in thy behalf, speak.”</p>
<p>“Nought that will avail, my King. I am innocent, yet cannot I
make it appear. I have no friends, else might I show that I was not
in Islington that day; so also might I show that at that hour they name I
was above a league away, seeing I was at Wapping Old Stairs; yea more, my
King, for I could show, that whilst they say I was <i>taking</i> life, I
was <i>saving</i> it. A drowning boy—”</p>
<p>“Peace! Sheriff, name the day the deed was done!”</p>
<p>“At ten in the morning, or some minutes later, the first day of the
New Year, most illustrious—”</p>
<p>“Let the prisoner go free—it is the King’s will!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link15-187" id="link15-187"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link15-187.jpg (170K)" src="images/15-187.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Another blush followed this unregal outburst, and he covered his indecorum
as well as he could by adding—</p>
<p>“It enrageth me that a man should be hanged upon such idle,
hare-brained evidence!”</p>
<p>A low buzz of admiration swept through the assemblage. It was not
admiration of the decree that had been delivered by Tom, for the propriety
or expediency of pardoning a convicted poisoner was a thing which few
there would have felt justified in either admitting or admiring—no,
the admiration was for the intelligence and spirit which Tom had
displayed. Some of the low-voiced remarks were to this effect—</p>
<p>“This is no mad king—he hath his wits sound.”</p>
<p>“How sanely he put his questions—how like his former natural
self was this abrupt imperious disposal of the matter!”</p>
<p>“God be thanked, his infirmity is spent! This is no weakling,
but a king. He hath borne himself like to his own father.”</p>
<p>The air being filled with applause, Tom’s ear necessarily caught a
little of it. The effect which this had upon him was to put him
greatly at his ease, and also to charge his system with very gratifying
sensations.</p>
<p>However, his juvenile curiosity soon rose superior to these pleasant
thoughts and feelings; he was eager to know what sort of deadly mischief
the woman and the little girl could have been about; so, by his command,
the two terrified and sobbing creatures were brought before him.</p>
<p>“What is it that these have done?” he inquired of the sheriff.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link15-188" id="link15-188"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link15-188.jpg (27K)" src="images/15-188.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Please your Majesty, a black crime is charged upon them, and
clearly proven; wherefore the judges have decreed, according to the law,
that they be hanged. They sold themselves to the devil—such is
their crime.”</p>
<p>Tom shuddered. He had been taught to abhor people who did this
wicked thing. Still, he was not going to deny himself the pleasure
of feeding his curiosity for all that; so he asked—</p>
<p>“Where was this done?—and when?”</p>
<p>“On a midnight in December, in a ruined church, your Majesty.”</p>
<p>Tom shuddered again.</p>
<p>“Who was there present?”</p>
<p>“Only these two, your grace—and <i>that other</i>.”</p>
<p>“Have these confessed?”</p>
<p>“Nay, not so, sire—they do deny it.”</p>
<p>“Then prithee, how was it known?”</p>
<p>“Certain witness did see them wending thither, good your Majesty;
this bred the suspicion, and dire effects have since confirmed and
justified it. In particular, it is in evidence that through the
wicked power so obtained, they did invoke and bring about a storm that
wasted all the region round about. Above forty witnesses have proved
the storm; and sooth one might have had a thousand, for all had reason to
remember it, sith all had suffered by it.”</p>
<p>“Certes this is a serious matter.” Tom turned this dark
piece of scoundrelism over in his mind a while, then asked—</p>
<p>“Suffered the woman also by the storm?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link15-190" id="link15-190"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link15-190.jpg (69K)" src="images/15-190.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Several old heads among the assemblage nodded their recognition of the
wisdom of this question. The sheriff, however, saw nothing
consequential in the inquiry; he answered, with simple directness—</p>
<p>“Indeed did she, your Majesty, and most righteously, as all aver.
Her habitation was swept away, and herself and child left shelterless.”</p>
<p>“Methinks the power to do herself so ill a turn was dearly bought.
She had been cheated, had she paid but a farthing for it; that she paid
her soul, and her child’s, argueth that she is mad; if she is mad
she knoweth not what she doth, therefore sinneth not.”</p>
<p>The elderly heads nodded recognition of Tom’s wisdom once more, and
one individual murmured, “An’ the King be mad himself,
according to report, then is it a madness of a sort that would improve the
sanity of some I wot of, if by the gentle providence of God they could but
catch it.”</p>
<p>“What age hath the child?” asked Tom.</p>
<p>“Nine years, please your Majesty.”</p>
<p>“By the law of England may a child enter into covenant and sell
itself, my lord?” asked Tom, turning to a learned judge.</p>
<p>“The law doth not permit a child to make or meddle in any weighty
matter, good my liege, holding that its callow wit unfitteth it to cope
with the riper wit and evil schemings of them that are its elders. The
<i>Devil</i> may buy a child, if he so choose, and the child agree
thereto, but not an Englishman—in this latter case the contract
would be null and void.”</p>
<p>“It seemeth a rude unchristian thing, and ill contrived, that
English law denieth privileges to Englishmen to waste them on the devil!”
cried Tom, with honest heat.</p>
<p>This novel view of the matter excited many smiles, and was stored away in
many heads to be repeated about the Court as evidence of Tom’s
originality as well as progress toward mental health.</p>
<p>The elder culprit had ceased from sobbing, and was hanging upon Tom’s
words with an excited interest and a growing hope. Tom noticed this,
and it strongly inclined his sympathies toward her in her perilous and
unfriended situation. Presently he asked—</p>
<p>“How wrought they to bring the storm?”</p>
<p>“<i>By pulling off their stockings</i>, sire.”</p>
<p>This astonished Tom, and also fired his curiosity to fever heat. He said,
eagerly—</p>
<p>“It is wonderful! Hath it always this dread effect?”</p>
<p>“Always, my liege—at least if the woman desire it, and utter
the needful words, either in her mind or with her tongue.”</p>
<p>Tom turned to the woman, and said with impetuous zeal—</p>
<p>“Exert thy power—I would see a storm!”</p>
<p>There was a sudden paling of cheeks in the superstitious assemblage, and a
general, though unexpressed, desire to get out of the place—all of
which was lost upon Tom, who was dead to everything but the proposed
cataclysm. Seeing a puzzled and astonished look in the woman’s
face, he added, excitedly—</p>
<p>“Never fear—thou shalt be blameless. More—thou
shalt go free—none shall touch thee. Exert thy power.”</p>
<p>“Oh, my lord the King, I have it not—I have been falsely
accused.”</p>
<p>“Thy fears stay thee. Be of good heart, thou shalt suffer no
harm. Make a storm—it mattereth not how small a one—I
require nought great or harmful, but indeed prefer the opposite—do
this and thy life is spared—thou shalt go out free, with thy child,
bearing the King’s pardon, and safe from hurt or malice from any in
the realm.”</p>
<p>The woman prostrated herself, and protested, with tears, that she had no
power to do the miracle, else she would gladly win her child’s life
alone, and be content to lose her own, if by obedience to the King’s
command so precious a grace might be acquired.</p>
<p>Tom urged—the woman still adhered to her declarations. Finally
he said—</p>
<p>“I think the woman hath said true. An’ <i>my</i> mother
were in her place and gifted with the devil’s functions, she had not
stayed a moment to call her storms and lay the whole land in ruins, if the
saving of my forfeit life were the price she got! It is argument
that other mothers are made in like mould. Thou art free, goodwife—thou
and thy child—for I do think thee innocent. <i>Now</i> thou’st
nought to fear, being pardoned—pull off thy stockings!—an’
thou canst make me a storm, thou shalt be rich!”</p>
<p>The redeemed creature was loud in her gratitude, and proceeded to obey,
whilst Tom looked on with eager expectancy, a little marred by
apprehension; the courtiers at the same time manifesting decided
discomfort and uneasiness. The woman stripped her own feet and her
little girl’s also, and plainly did her best to reward the King’s
generosity with an earthquake, but it was all a failure and a
disappointment. Tom sighed, and said—</p>
<p>“There, good soul, trouble thyself no further, thy power is departed
out of thee. Go thy way in peace; and if it return to thee at any
time, forget me not, but fetch me a storm.” {13}</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c16" id="c16"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link16-193" id="link16-193"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link16-193.jpg (42K)" src="images/16-193.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XVI. The State Dinner.</p>
<p>The dinner hour drew near—yet strangely enough, the thought brought
but slight discomfort to Tom, and hardly any terror. The morning’s
experiences had wonderfully built up his confidence; the poor little
ash-cat was already more wonted to his strange garret, after four days’
habit, than a mature person could have become in a full month. A
child’s facility in accommodating itself to circumstances was never
more strikingly illustrated.</p>
<p>Let us privileged ones hurry to the great banqueting-room and have a
glance at matters there whilst Tom is being made ready for the imposing
occasion. It is a spacious apartment, with gilded pillars and
pilasters, and pictured walls and ceilings. At the door stand tall
guards, as rigid as statues, dressed in rich and picturesque costumes, and
bearing halberds. In a high gallery which runs all around the place
is a band of musicians and a packed company of citizens of both sexes, in
brilliant attire. In the centre of the room, upon a raised platform,
is Tom’s table. Now let the ancient chronicler speak:</p>
<p><SPAN name="link16-196" id="link16-196"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link16-196.jpg (65K)" src="images/16-196.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“A gentleman enters the room bearing a rod, and along with him
another bearing a tablecloth, which, after they have both kneeled three
times with the utmost veneration, he spreads upon the table, and after
kneeling again they both retire; then come two others, one with the rod
again, the other with a salt-cellar, a plate, and bread; when they have
kneeled as the others had done, and placed what was brought upon the
table, they too retire with the same ceremonies performed by the first; at
last come two nobles, richly clothed, one bearing a tasting-knife, who,
after prostrating themselves three times in the most graceful manner,
approach and rub the table with bread and salt, with as much awe as if the
King had been present.” {6}</p>
<p>So end the solemn preliminaries. Now, far down the echoing corridors
we hear a bugle-blast, and the indistinct cry, “Place for the King!
Way for the King’s most excellent majesty!” These
sounds are momently repeated—they grow nearer and nearer—and
presently, almost in our faces, the martial note peals and the cry rings
out, “Way for the King!” At this instant the shining
pageant appears, and files in at the door, with a measured march. Let the
chronicler speak again:—</p>
<p>“First come Gentlemen, Barons, Earls, Knights of the Garter, all
richly dressed and bareheaded; next comes the Chancellor, between two, one
of which carries the royal sceptre, the other the Sword of State in a red
scabbard, studded with golden fleurs-de-lis, the point upwards; next comes
the King himself—whom, upon his appearing, twelve trumpets and many
drums salute with a great burst of welcome, whilst all in the galleries
rise in their places, crying ‘God save the King!’ After
him come nobles attached to his person, and on his right and left march
his guard of honour, his fifty Gentlemen Pensioners, with gilt
battle-axes.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link16-197" id="link16-197"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link16-197.jpg (183K)" src="images/16-197.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>This was all fine and pleasant. Tom’s pulse beat high, and a
glad light was in his eye. He bore himself right gracefully, and all
the more so because he was not thinking of how he was doing it, his mind
being charmed and occupied with the blithe sights and sounds about him—and
besides, nobody can be very ungraceful in nicely-fitting beautiful clothes
after he has grown a little used to them—especially if he is for the
moment unconscious of them. Tom remembered his instructions, and
acknowledged his greeting with a slight inclination of his plumed head,
and a courteous “I thank ye, my good people.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link16-198" id="link16-198"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link16-198.jpg (43K)" src="images/16-198.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He seated himself at table, without removing his cap; and did it without
the least embarrassment; for to eat with one’s cap on was the one
solitary royal custom upon which the kings and the Cantys met upon common
ground, neither party having any advantage over the other in the matter of
old familiarity with it. The pageant broke up and grouped itself
picturesquely, and remained bareheaded.</p>
<p>Now to the sound of gay music the Yeomen of the Guard entered,—“the
tallest and mightiest men in England, they being carefully selected in
this regard”—but we will let the chronicler tell about it:—</p>
<p>“The Yeomen of the Guard entered, bareheaded, clothed in scarlet,
with golden roses upon their backs; and these went and came, bringing in
each turn a course of dishes, served in plate. These dishes were
received by a gentleman in the same order they were brought, and placed
upon the table, while the taster gave to each guard a mouthful to eat of
the particular dish he had brought, for fear of any poison.”</p>
<p>Tom made a good dinner, notwithstanding he was conscious that hundreds of
eyes followed each morsel to his mouth and watched him eat it with an
interest which could not have been more intense if it had been a deadly
explosive and was expected to blow him up and scatter him all about the
place. He was careful not to hurry, and equally careful not to do
anything whatever for himself, but wait till the proper official knelt
down and did it for him. He got through without a mistake—flawless
and precious triumph.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link16-199" id="link16-199"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link16-199.jpg (99K)" src="images/16-199.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>When the meal was over at last and he marched away in the midst of his
bright pageant, with the happy noises in his ears of blaring bugles,
rolling drums, and thundering acclamations, he felt that if he had seen
the worst of dining in public it was an ordeal which he would be glad to
endure several times a day if by that means he could but buy himself free
from some of the more formidable requirements of his royal office.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c17" id="c17"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link17-201" id="link17-201"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-201.jpg (70K)" src="images/17-201.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XVII. Foo-foo the First.</p>
<p>Miles Hendon hurried along toward the Southwark end of the bridge, keeping
a sharp look-out for the persons he sought, and hoping and expecting to
overtake them presently. He was disappointed in this, however.
By asking questions, he was enabled to track them part of the way
through Southwark; then all traces ceased, and he was perplexed as to how
to proceed. Still, he continued his efforts as best he could during
the rest of the day. Nightfall found him leg-weary, half-famished,
and his desire as far from accomplishment as ever; so he supped at the
Tabard Inn and went to bed, resolved to make an early start in the
morning, and give the town an exhaustive search. As he lay thinking
and planning, he presently began to reason thus: The boy would
escape from the ruffian, his reputed father, if possible; would he go back
to London and seek his former haunts? No, he would not do that, he
would avoid recapture. What, then, would he do? Never having had a
friend in the world, or a protector, until he met Miles Hendon, he would
naturally try to find that friend again, provided the effort did not
require him to go toward London and danger. He would strike for
Hendon Hall, that is what he would do, for he knew Hendon was homeward
bound and there he might expect to find him. Yes, the case was plain
to Hendon—he must lose no more time in Southwark, but move at once
through Kent, toward Monk’s Holm, searching the wood and inquiring
as he went. Let us return to the vanished little King now.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-205" id="link17-205"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-205.jpg (159K)" src="images/17-205.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The ruffian whom the waiter at the inn on the bridge saw ‘about to
join’ the youth and the King did not exactly join them, but fell in
close behind them and followed their steps. He said nothing. His
left arm was in a sling, and he wore a large green patch over his left
eye; he limped slightly, and used an oaken staff as a support. The
youth led the King a crooked course through Southwark, and by-and-by
struck into the high road beyond. The King was irritated, now, and
said he would stop here—it was Hendon’s place to come to him,
not his to go to Hendon. He would not endure such insolence; he
would stop where he was. The youth said—</p>
<p>“Thou’lt tarry here, and thy friend lying wounded in the wood
yonder? So be it, then.”</p>
<p>The King’s manner changed at once. He cried out—</p>
<p>“Wounded? And who hath dared to do it? But that is
apart; lead on, lead on! Faster, sirrah! Art shod with lead?
Wounded, is he? Now though the doer of it be a duke’s
son he shall rue it!”</p>
<p>It was some distance to the wood, but the space was speedily traversed.
The youth looked about him, discovered a bough sticking in the ground,
with a small bit of rag tied to it, then led the way into the forest,
watching for similar boughs and finding them at intervals; they were
evidently guides to the point he was aiming at. By-and-by an open
place was reached, where were the charred remains of a farm-house, and
near them a barn which was falling to ruin and decay. There was no
sign of life anywhere, and utter silence prevailed. The youth
entered the barn, the King following eagerly upon his heels. No one
there! The King shot a surprised and suspicious glance at the youth, and
asked—</p>
<p>“Where is he?”</p>
<p>A mocking laugh was his answer. The King was in a rage in a moment;
he seized a billet of wood and was in the act of charging upon the youth
when another mocking laugh fell upon his ear. It was from the lame
ruffian who had been following at a distance. The King turned and said
angrily—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-206" id="link17-206"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-206.jpg (110K)" src="images/17-206.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Who art thou? What is thy business here?”</p>
<p>“Leave thy foolery,” said the man, “and quiet thyself.
My disguise is none so good that thou canst pretend thou knowest not
thy father through it.”</p>
<p>“Thou art not my father. I know thee not. I am the King.
If thou hast hid my servant, find him for me, or thou shalt sup
sorrow for what thou hast done.”</p>
<p>John Canty replied, in a stern and measured voice—</p>
<p>“It is plain thou art mad, and I am loath to punish thee; but
if thou provoke me, I must. Thy prating doth no harm here, where
there are no ears that need to mind thy follies; yet it is well to
practise thy tongue to wary speech, that it may do no hurt when our
quarters change. I have done a murder, and may not tarry at home—neither
shalt thou, seeing I need thy service. My name is changed, for wise
reasons; it is Hobbs—John Hobbs; thine is Jack—charge thy
memory accordingly. Now, then, speak. Where is thy mother?
Where are thy sisters? They came not to the place appointed—knowest
thou whither they went?”</p>
<p>The King answered sullenly—</p>
<p>“Trouble me not with these riddles. My mother is dead; my
sisters are in the palace.”</p>
<p>The youth near by burst into a derisive laugh, and the King would have
assaulted him, but Canty—or Hobbs, as he now called himself—prevented
him, and said—</p>
<p>“Peace, Hugo, vex him not; his mind is astray, and thy ways fret
him. Sit thee down, Jack, and quiet thyself; thou shalt have a morsel to
eat, anon.”</p>
<p>Hobbs and Hugo fell to talking together, in low voices, and the King
removed himself as far as he could from their disagreeable company. He
withdrew into the twilight of the farther end of the barn, where he found
the earthen floor bedded a foot deep with straw. He lay down here,
drew straw over himself in lieu of blankets, and was soon absorbed in
thinking. He had many griefs, but the minor ones were swept almost
into forgetfulness by the supreme one, the loss of his father. To
the rest of the world the name of Henry VIII. brought a shiver, and
suggested an ogre whose nostrils breathed destruction and whose hand dealt
scourgings and death; but to this boy the name brought only sensations of
pleasure; the figure it invoked wore a countenance that was all gentleness
and affection. He called to mind a long succession of loving
passages between his father and himself, and dwelt fondly upon them, his
unstinted tears attesting how deep and real was the grief that possessed
his heart. As the afternoon wasted away, the lad, wearied with his
troubles, sank gradually into a tranquil and healing slumber.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-207" id="link17-207"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-207.jpg (74K)" src="images/17-207.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>After a considerable time—he could not tell how long—his
senses struggled to a half-consciousness, and as he lay with closed eyes
vaguely wondering where he was and what had been happening, he noted a
murmurous sound, the sullen beating of rain upon the roof. A snug sense of
comfort stole over him, which was rudely broken, the next moment, by a
chorus of piping cackles and coarse laughter. It startled him
disagreeably, and he unmuffled his head to see whence this interruption
proceeded. A grim and unsightly picture met his eye. A bright
fire was burning in the middle of the floor, at the other end of the barn;
and around it, and lit weirdly up by the red glare, lolled and sprawled
the motliest company of tattered gutter-scum and ruffians, of both sexes,
he had ever read or dreamed of. There were huge stalwart men, brown
with exposure, long-haired, and clothed in fantastic rags; there were
middle-sized youths, of truculent countenance, and similarly clad; there
were blind mendicants, with patched or bandaged eyes; crippled ones, with
wooden legs and crutches; diseased ones, with running sores peeping from
ineffectual wrappings; there was a villain-looking pedlar with his pack; a
knife-grinder, a tinker, and a barber-surgeon, with the implements of
their trades; some of the females were hardly-grown girls, some were at
prime, some were old and wrinkled hags, and all were loud, brazen,
foul-mouthed; and all soiled and slatternly; there were three sore-faced
babies; there were a couple of starveling curs, with strings about their
necks, whose office was to lead the blind.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-208" id="link17-208"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-208.jpg (160K)" src="images/17-208.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The night was come, the gang had just finished feasting, an orgy was
beginning; the can of liquor was passing from mouth to mouth. A general
cry broke forth—</p>
<p>“A song! a song from the Bat and Dick and Dot-and-go-One!”</p>
<p>One of the blind men got up, and made ready by casting aside the patches
that sheltered his excellent eyes, and the pathetic placard which recited
the cause of his calamity. Dot-and-go-One disencumbered himself of
his timber leg and took his place, upon sound and healthy limbs, beside
his fellow-rascal; then they roared out a rollicking ditty, and were
reinforced by the whole crew, at the end of each stanza, in a rousing
chorus. By the time the last stanza was reached, the half-drunken
enthusiasm had risen to such a pitch, that everybody joined in and sang it
clear through from the beginning, producing a volume of villainous sound
that made the rafters quake. These were the inspiring words:—</p>
<p>‘Bien Darkman’s then, Bouse Mort and Ken,<br/> The bien Coves
bings awast,<br/> On Chates to trine by Rome Coves dine<br/> For his long
lib at last.<br/> Bing’d out bien Morts and toure, and toure,<br/>
Bing out of the Rome vile bine,<br/> And toure the Cove that cloy’d
your duds,<br/> Upon the Chates to trine.‘<br/><br/> (From’The
English Rogue.’ London, 1665.)</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-210" id="link17-210"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-210.jpg (63K)" src="images/17-210.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Conversation followed; not in the thieves’ dialect of the song, for
that was only used in talk when unfriendly ears might be listening. In
the course of it, it appeared that ‘John Hobbs’ was not
altogether a new recruit, but had trained in the gang at some former time.
His later history was called for, and when he said he had ‘accidentally’
killed a man, considerable satisfaction was expressed; when he added that
the man was a priest, he was roundly applauded, and had to take a drink
with everybody. Old acquaintances welcomed him joyously, and new
ones were proud to shake him by the hand. He was asked why he had
’tarried away so many months.’ He answered—</p>
<p>“London is better than the country, and safer, these late years, the
laws be so bitter and so diligently enforced. An’ I had not
had that accident, I had stayed there. I had resolved to stay, and
never more venture country-wards—but the accident has ended that.”</p>
<p>He inquired how many persons the gang numbered now. The ‘ruffler,’
or chief, answered—</p>
<p>“Five and twenty sturdy budges, bulks, files, clapperdogeons and
maunders, counting the dells and doxies and other morts. {7} Most
are here, the rest are wandering eastward, along the winter lay. We follow
at dawn.”</p>
<p>“I do not see the Wen among the honest folk about me. Where
may he be?”</p>
<p>“Poor lad, his diet is brimstone, now, and over hot for a delicate
taste. He was killed in a brawl, somewhere about midsummer.”</p>
<p>“I sorrow to hear that; the Wen was a capable man, and brave.”</p>
<p>“That was he, truly. Black Bess, his dell, is of us yet, but
absent on the eastward tramp; a fine lass, of nice ways and orderly
conduct, none ever seeing her drunk above four days in the seven.”</p>
<p>“She was ever strict—I remember it well—a goodly wench
and worthy all commendation. Her mother was more free and less
particular; a troublesome and ugly-tempered beldame, but furnished with a
wit above the common.”</p>
<p>“We lost her through it. Her gift of palmistry and other sorts
of fortune-telling begot for her at last a witch’s name and fame.
The law roasted her to death at a slow fire. It did touch me to a
sort of tenderness to see the gallant way she met her lot—cursing
and reviling all the crowd that gaped and gazed around her, whilst the
flames licked upward toward her face and catched her thin locks and
crackled about her old gray head—cursing them! why an’ thou
should’st live a thousand years thoud’st never hear so
masterful a cursing. Alack, her art died with her. There be
base and weakling imitations left, but no true blasphemy.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-212" id="link17-212"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-212.jpg (44K)" src="images/17-212.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The Ruffler sighed; the listeners sighed in sympathy; a general depression
fell upon the company for a moment, for even hardened outcasts like these
are not wholly dead to sentiment, but are able to feel a fleeting sense of
loss and affliction at wide intervals and under peculiarly favouring
circumstances—as in cases like to this, for instance, when genius
and culture depart and leave no heir. However, a deep drink all
round soon restored the spirits of the mourners.</p>
<p>“Have any others of our friends fared hardly?” asked Hobbs.</p>
<p>“Some—yes. Particularly new comers—such as small
husbandmen turned shiftless and hungry upon the world because their farms
were taken from them to be changed to sheep ranges. They begged, and
were whipped at the cart’s tail, naked from the girdle up, till the
blood ran; then set in the stocks to be pelted; they begged again, were
whipped again, and deprived of an ear; they begged a third time—poor
devils, what else could they do?—and were branded on the cheek with
a red-hot iron, then sold for slaves; they ran away, were hunted down, and
hanged. ’Tis a brief tale, and quickly told. Others of
us have fared less hardly. Stand forth, Yokel, Burns, and Hodge—show
your adornments!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-213" id="link17-213"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-213.jpg (125K)" src="images/17-213.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>These stood up and stripped away some of their rags, exposing their backs,
criss-crossed with ropy old welts left by the lash; one turned up his hair
and showed the place where a left ear had once been; another showed a
brand upon his shoulder—the letter V—and a mutilated ear; the
third said—</p>
<p>“I am Yokel, once a farmer and prosperous, with loving wife and kids—now
am I somewhat different in estate and calling; and the wife and kids are
gone; mayhap they are in heaven, mayhap in—in the other place—but
the kindly God be thanked, they bide no more in <i>England</i>! My
good old blameless mother strove to earn bread by nursing the sick; one of
these died, the doctors knew not how, so my mother was burnt for a witch,
whilst my babes looked on and wailed. English law!—up, all,
with your cups!—now all together and with a cheer!—drink to
the merciful English law that delivered <i>her</i> from the English hell!
Thank you, mates, one and all. I begged, from house to house—I
and the wife—bearing with us the hungry kids—but it was crime
to be hungry in England—so they stripped us and lashed us through
three towns. Drink ye all again to the merciful English law!—for
its lash drank deep of my Mary’s blood and its blessed deliverance
came quick. She lies there, in the potter’s field, safe from
all harms. And the kids—well, whilst the law lashed me from
town to town, they starved. Drink, lads—only a drop—a drop to
the poor kids, that never did any creature harm. I begged again—begged,
for a crust, and got the stocks and lost an ear—see, here bides the
stump; I begged again, and here is the stump of the other to keep me
minded of it. And still I begged again, and was sold for a slave—here
on my cheek under this stain, if I washed it off, ye might see the red S
the branding-iron left there! A <i>slave</i>! Do you
understand that word? An English <i>slave</i>!—that is he that
stands before ye. I have run from my master, and when I am found—the
heavy curse of heaven fall on the law of the land that hath commanded it!—I
shall hang!” {1}</p>
<p>A ringing voice came through the murky air—</p>
<p>“Thou shalt <i>not</i>!—and this day the end of that law is
come!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-215" id="link17-215"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-215.jpg (87K)" src="images/17-215.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>All turned, and saw the fantastic figure of the little King approaching
hurriedly; as it emerged into the light and was clearly revealed, a
general explosion of inquiries broke out—</p>
<p>“Who is it? <i>What</i> is it? Who art thou, manikin?”</p>
<p>The boy stood unconfused in the midst of all those surprised and
questioning eyes, and answered with princely dignity—</p>
<p>“I am Edward, King of England.”</p>
<p>A wild burst of laughter followed, partly of derision and partly of
delight in the excellence of the joke. The King was stung. He
said sharply—</p>
<p>“Ye mannerless vagrants, is this your recognition of the royal boon
I have promised?”</p>
<p>He said more, with angry voice and excited gesture, but it was lost in a
whirlwind of laughter and mocking exclamations. ’John Hobbs’
made several attempts to make himself heard above the din, and at last
succeeded—saying—</p>
<p>“Mates, he is my son, a dreamer, a fool, and stark mad—mind
him not—he thinketh he <i>is</i> the King.”</p>
<p>“I <i>am</i> the King,” said Edward, turning toward him,
“as thou shalt know to thy cost, in good time. Thou hast
confessed a murder—thou shalt swing for it.”</p>
<p>“<i>Thou’lt</i> betray me?—<i>thou</i>? An’
I get my hands upon thee—”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-216" id="link17-216"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-216.jpg (101K)" src="images/17-216.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Tut-tut!” said the burley Ruffler, interposing in time to
save the King, and emphasising this service by knocking Hobbs down with
his fist, “hast respect for neither Kings <i>nor</i> Rufflers?
An’ thou insult my presence so again, I’ll hang thee up
myself.” Then he said to his Majesty, “Thou must make no
threats against thy mates, lad; and thou must guard thy tongue from saying
evil of them elsewhere. <i>Be king</i>, if it please thy mad humour,
but be not harmful in it. Sink the title thou hast uttered—’tis
treason; we be bad men in some few trifling ways, but none among us is so
base as to be traitor to his King; we be loving and loyal hearts, in that
regard. Note if I speak truth. Now—all together: ’Long
live Edward, King of England!’”</p>
<p>“LONG LIVE EDWARD, KING OF ENGLAND!”</p>
<p>The response came with such a thundergust from the motley crew that the
crazy building vibrated to the sound. The little King’s face
lighted with pleasure for an instant, and he slightly inclined his head,
and said with grave simplicity—</p>
<p>“I thank you, my good people.”</p>
<p>This unexpected result threw the company into convulsions of merriment.
When something like quiet was presently come again, the Ruffler said,
firmly, but with an accent of good nature—</p>
<p>“Drop it, boy, ’tis not wise, nor well. Humour thy
fancy, if thou must, but choose some other title.”</p>
<p>A tinker shrieked out a suggestion—</p>
<p>“Foo-foo the First, King of the Mooncalves!”</p>
<p>The title ’took,’ at once, every throat responded, and a
roaring shout went up, of—</p>
<p>“Long live Foo-foo the First, King of the Mooncalves!”
followed by hootings, cat-calls, and peals of laughter.</p>
<p>“Hale him forth, and crown him!”</p>
<p>“Robe him!”</p>
<p>“Sceptre him!”</p>
<p>“Throne him!”</p>
<p>These and twenty other cries broke out at once! and almost before the poor
little victim could draw a breath he was crowned with a tin basin, robed
in a tattered blanket, throned upon a barrel, and sceptred with the tinker’s
soldering-iron. Then all flung themselves upon their knees about him
and sent up a chorus of ironical wailings, and mocking supplications,
whilst they swabbed their eyes with their soiled and ragged sleeves and
aprons—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link17-218" id="link17-218"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link17-218.jpg (108K)" src="images/17-218.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Be gracious to us, O sweet King!”</p>
<p>“Trample not upon thy beseeching worms, O noble Majesty!”</p>
<p>“Pity thy slaves, and comfort them with a royal kick!”</p>
<p>“Cheer us and warm us with thy gracious rays, O flaming sun of
sovereignty!”</p>
<p>“Sanctify the ground with the touch of thy foot, that we may eat the
dirt and be ennobled!”</p>
<p>“Deign to spit upon us, O Sire, that our children’s children
may tell of thy princely condescension, and be proud and happy for ever!”</p>
<p>But the humorous tinker made the ‘hit’ of the evening and
carried off the honours. Kneeling, he pretended to kiss the King’s
foot, and was indignantly spurned; whereupon he went about begging for a
rag to paste over the place upon his face which had been touched by the
foot, saying it must be preserved from contact with the vulgar air, and
that he should make his fortune by going on the highway and exposing it to
view at the rate of a hundred shillings a sight. He made himself so
killingly funny that he was the envy and admiration of the whole mangy
rabble.</p>
<p>Tears of shame and indignation stood in the little monarch’s eyes;
and the thought in his heart was, “Had I offered them a deep wrong
they could not be more cruel—yet have I proffered nought but to do
them a kindness—and it is thus they use me for it!”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c18" id="c18"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link18-221" id="link18-221"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-221.jpg (75K)" src="images/18-221.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XVIII. The Prince with the Tramps.</p>
<p>The troop of vagabonds turned out at early dawn, and set forward on their
march. There was a lowering sky overhead, sloppy ground under foot,
and a winter chill in the air. All gaiety was gone from the company;
some were sullen and silent, some were irritable and petulant, none were
gentle-humoured, all were thirsty.</p>
<p>The Ruffler put ‘Jack’ in Hugo’s charge, with some brief
instructions, and commanded John Canty to keep away from him and let him
alone; he also warned Hugo not to be too rough with the lad.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-224" id="link18-224"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-224.jpg (97K)" src="images/18-224.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>After a while the weather grew milder, and the clouds lifted somewhat. The
troop ceased to shiver, and their spirits began to improve. They
grew more and more cheerful, and finally began to chaff each other and
insult passengers along the highway. This showed that they were
awaking to an appreciation of life and its joys once more. The dread
in which their sort was held was apparent in the fact that everybody gave
them the road, and took their ribald insolences meekly, without venturing
to talk back. They snatched linen from the hedges, occasionally in full
view of the owners, who made no protest, but only seemed grateful that
they did not take the hedges, too.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-225" id="link18-225"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-225.jpg (97K)" src="images/18-225.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>By-and-by they invaded a small farmhouse and made themselves at home while
the trembling farmer and his people swept the larder clean to furnish a
breakfast for them. They chucked the housewife and her daughters
under the chin whilst receiving the food from their hands, and made coarse
jests about them, accompanied with insulting epithets and bursts of
horse-laughter. They threw bones and vegetables at the farmer and
his sons, kept them dodging all the time, and applauded uproariously when
a good hit was made. They ended by buttering the head of one of the
daughters who resented some of their familiarities. When they took
their leave they threatened to come back and burn the house over the heads
of the family if any report of their doings got to the ears of the
authorities.</p>
<p>About noon, after a long and weary tramp, the gang came to a halt behind a
hedge on the outskirts of a considerable village. An hour was
allowed for rest, then the crew scattered themselves abroad to enter the
village at different points to ply their various trades—‘Jack’
was sent with Hugo. They wandered hither and thither for some time,
Hugo watching for opportunities to do a stroke of business, but finding
none—so he finally said—</p>
<p>“I see nought to steal; it is a paltry place. Wherefore we
will beg.”</p>
<p>“<i>We</i>, forsooth! Follow thy trade—it befits thee.
But <i>I</i> will not beg.”</p>
<p>“Thou’lt not beg!” exclaimed Hugo, eyeing the King with
surprise. “Prithee, since when hast thou reformed?”</p>
<p>“What dost thou mean?”</p>
<p>“Mean? Hast thou not begged the streets of London all thy
life?”</p>
<p>“I? Thou idiot!”</p>
<p>“Spare thy compliments—thy stock will last the longer. Thy
father says thou hast begged all thy days. Mayhap he lied.
Peradventure you will even make so bold as to <i>say</i> he lied,”
scoffed Hugo.</p>
<p>“Him <i>you</i> call my father? Yes, he lied.”</p>
<p>“Come, play not thy merry game of madman so far, mate; use it for
thy amusement, not thy hurt. An’ I tell him this, he will
scorch thee finely for it.”</p>
<p>“Save thyself the trouble. I will tell him.”</p>
<p>“I like thy spirit, I do in truth; but I do not admire thy judgment.
Bone-rackings and bastings be plenty enow in this life, without going out
of one’s way to invite them. But a truce to these matters; <i>I</i>
believe your father. I doubt not he can lie; I doubt not he <i>doth</i>
lie, upon occasion, for the best of us do that; but there is no occasion
here. A wise man does not waste so good a commodity as lying for
nought. But come; sith it is thy humour to give over begging,
wherewithal shall we busy ourselves? With robbing kitchens?”</p>
<p>The King said, impatiently—</p>
<p>“Have done with this folly—you weary me!”</p>
<p>Hugo replied, with temper—</p>
<p>“Now harkee, mate; you will not beg, you will not rob; so be it. But
I will tell you what you <i>will</i> do. You will play decoy whilst
<i>I</i> beg. Refuse, an’ you think you may venture!”</p>
<p>The King was about to reply contemptuously, when Hugo said, interrupting—</p>
<p>“Peace! Here comes one with a kindly face. Now will I
fall down in a fit. When the stranger runs to me, set you up a wail,
and fall upon your knees, seeming to weep; then cry out as all the devils
of misery were in your belly, and say, ‘Oh, sir, it is my poor
afflicted brother, and we be friendless; o’ God’s name cast
through your merciful eyes one pitiful look upon a sick, forsaken, and
most miserable wretch; bestow one little penny out of thy riches upon one
smitten of God and ready to perish!’—and mind you, keep you <i>on</i>
wailing, and abate not till we bilk him of his penny, else shall you rue
it.”</p>
<p>Then immediately Hugo began to moan, and groan, and roll his eyes, and
reel and totter about; and when the stranger was close at hand, down he
sprawled before him, with a shriek, and began to writhe and wallow in the
dirt, in seeming agony.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-227" id="link18-227"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-227.jpg (143K)" src="images/18-227.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“O, dear, O dear!” cried the benevolent stranger, “O
poor soul, poor soul, how he doth suffer! There—let me help
thee up.”</p>
<p>“O noble sir, forbear, and God love you for a princely gentleman—but
it giveth me cruel pain to touch me when I am taken so. My brother
there will tell your worship how I am racked with anguish when these fits
be upon me. A penny, dear sir, a penny, to buy a little food; then
leave me to my sorrows.”</p>
<p>“A penny! thou shalt have three, thou hapless creature,”—and
he fumbled in his pocket with nervous haste and got them out. “There,
poor lad, take them and most welcome. Now come hither, my boy, and
help me carry thy stricken brother to yon house, where—”</p>
<p>“I am not his brother,” said the King, interrupting.</p>
<p>“What! not his brother?”</p>
<p>“Oh, hear him!” groaned Hugo, then privately ground his teeth.
“He denies his own brother—and he with one foot in the grave!”</p>
<p>“Boy, thou art indeed hard of heart, if this is thy brother. For
shame!—and he scarce able to move hand or foot. If he is not
thy brother, who is he, then?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-228" id="link18-228"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-228.jpg (137K)" src="images/18-228.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“A beggar and a thief! He has got your money and has picked
your pocket likewise. An’ thou would’st do a healing
miracle, lay thy staff over his shoulders and trust Providence for the
rest.”</p>
<p>But Hugo did not tarry for the miracle. In a moment he was up and
off like the wind, the gentleman following after and raising the hue and
cry lustily as he went. The King, breathing deep gratitude to Heaven
for his own release, fled in the opposite direction, and did not slacken
his pace until he was out of harm’s reach. He took the first
road that offered, and soon put the village behind him. He hurried
along, as briskly as he could, during several hours, keeping a nervous
watch over his shoulder for pursuit; but his fears left him at last, and a
grateful sense of security took their place. He recognised, now,
that he was hungry, and also very tired. So he halted at a
farmhouse; but when he was about to speak, he was cut short and driven
rudely away. His clothes were against him.</p>
<p>He wandered on, wounded and indignant, and was resolved to put himself in
the way of like treatment no more. But hunger is pride’s
master; so, as the evening drew near, he made an attempt at another
farmhouse; but here he fared worse than before; for he was called hard
names and was promised arrest as a vagrant except he moved on promptly.</p>
<p>The night came on, chilly and overcast; and still the footsore monarch
laboured slowly on. He was obliged to keep moving, for every time he
sat down to rest he was soon penetrated to the bone with the cold. All
his sensations and experiences, as he moved through the solemn gloom and
the empty vastness of the night, were new and strange to him. At
intervals he heard voices approach, pass by, and fade into silence; and as
he saw nothing more of the bodies they belonged to than a sort of formless
drifting blur, there was something spectral and uncanny about it all that
made him shudder. Occasionally he caught the twinkle of a light—always
far away, apparently—almost in another world; if he heard the tinkle
of a sheep’s bell, it was vague, distant, indistinct; the muffled
lowing of the herds floated to him on the night wind in vanishing
cadences, a mournful sound; now and then came the complaining howl of a
dog over viewless expanses of field and forest; all sounds were remote;
they made the little King feel that all life and activity were far removed
from him, and that he stood solitary, companionless, in the centre of a
measureless solitude.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-230" id="link18-230"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-230.jpg (152K)" src="images/18-230.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He stumbled along, through the gruesome fascinations of this new
experience, startled occasionally by the soft rustling of the dry leaves
overhead, so like human whispers they seemed to sound; and by-and-by he
came suddenly upon the freckled light of a tin lantern near at hand.
He stepped back into the shadows and waited. The lantern stood
by the open door of a barn. The King waited some time—there
was no sound, and nobody stirring. He got so cold, standing still,
and the hospitable barn looked so enticing, that at last he resolved to
risk everything and enter. He started swiftly and stealthily, and just as
he was crossing the threshold he heard voices behind him. He darted
behind a cask, within the barn, and stooped down. Two farm-labourers
came in, bringing the lantern with them, and fell to work, talking
meanwhile. Whilst they moved about with the light, the King made
good use of his eyes and took the bearings of what seemed to be a
good-sized stall at the further end of the place, purposing to grope his
way to it when he should be left to himself. He also noted the
position of a pile of horse blankets, midway of the route, with the intent
to levy upon them for the service of the crown of England for one night.</p>
<p>By-and-by the men finished and went away, fastening the door behind them
and taking the lantern with them. The shivering King made for the
blankets, with as good speed as the darkness would allow; gathered them
up, and then groped his way safely to the stall. Of two of the
blankets he made a bed, then covered himself with the remaining two.
He was a glad monarch, now, though the blankets were old and thin,
and not quite warm enough; and besides gave out a pungent horsey odour
that was almost suffocatingly powerful.</p>
<p>Although the King was hungry and chilly, he was also so tired and so
drowsy that these latter influences soon began to get the advantage of the
former, and he presently dozed off into a state of semi-consciousness.
Then, just as he was on the point of losing himself wholly, he
distinctly felt something touch him! He was broad awake in a moment,
and gasping for breath. The cold horror of that mysterious touch in
the dark almost made his heart stand still. He lay motionless, and
listened, scarcely breathing. But nothing stirred, and there was no sound.
He continued to listen, and wait, during what seemed a long time,
but still nothing stirred, and there was no sound. So he began to
drop into a drowse once more, at last; and all at once he felt that
mysterious touch again! It was a grisly thing, this light touch from
this noiseless and invisible presence; it made the boy sick with ghostly
fears. What should he do? That was the question; but he did
not know how to answer it. Should he leave these reasonably
comfortable quarters and fly from this inscrutable horror? But fly
whither? He could not get out of the barn; and the idea of scurrying
blindly hither and thither in the dark, within the captivity of the four
walls, with this phantom gliding after him, and visiting him with that
soft hideous touch upon cheek or shoulder at every turn, was intolerable.
But to stay where he was, and endure this living death all night—was
that better? No. What, then, was there left to do? Ah,
there was but one course; he knew it well—he must put out his hand
and find that thing!</p>
<p>It was easy to think this; but it was hard to brace himself up to try it.
Three times he stretched his hand a little way out into the dark,
gingerly; and snatched it suddenly back, with a gasp—not because it
had encountered anything, but because he had felt so sure it was just <i>going</i>
to. But the fourth time, he groped a little further, and his hand
lightly swept against something soft and warm. This petrified him,
nearly, with fright; his mind was in such a state that he could imagine
the thing to be nothing else than a corpse, newly dead and still warm. He
thought he would rather die than touch it again. But he thought this
false thought because he did not know the immortal strength of human
curiosity. In no long time his hand was tremblingly groping again—against
his judgment, and without his consent—but groping persistently on,
just the same. It encountered a bunch of long hair; he shuddered,
but followed up the hair and found what seemed to be a warm rope; followed
up the rope and found an innocent calf!—for the rope was not a rope
at all, but the calf’s tail.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-232" id="link18-232"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-232.jpg (88K)" src="images/18-232.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King was cordially ashamed of himself for having gotten all that
fright and misery out of so paltry a matter as a slumbering calf; but he
need not have felt so about it, for it was not the calf that frightened
him, but a dreadful non-existent something which the calf stood for; and
any other boy, in those old superstitious times, would have acted and
suffered just as he had done.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link18-233" id="link18-233"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link18-233.jpg (109K)" src="images/18-233.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King was not only delighted to find that the creature was only a calf,
but delighted to have the calf’s company; for he had been feeling so
lonesome and friendless that the company and comradeship of even this
humble animal were welcome. And he had been so buffeted, so rudely
entreated by his own kind, that it was a real comfort to him to feel that
he was at last in the society of a fellow-creature that had at least a
soft heart and a gentle spirit, whatever loftier attributes might be
lacking. So he resolved to waive rank and make friends with the
calf.</p>
<p>While stroking its sleek warm back—for it lay near him and within
easy reach—it occurred to him that this calf might be utilised in
more ways than one. Whereupon he re-arranged his bed, spreading it
down close to the calf; then he cuddled himself up to the calf’s
back, drew the covers up over himself and his friend, and in a minute or
two was as warm and comfortable as he had ever been in the downy couches
of the regal palace of Westminster.</p>
<p>Pleasant thoughts came at once; life took on a cheerfuller seeming. He
was free of the bonds of servitude and crime, free of the companionship of
base and brutal outlaws; he was warm; he was sheltered; in a word, he was
happy. The night wind was rising; it swept by in fitful gusts that
made the old barn quake and rattle, then its forces died down at
intervals, and went moaning and wailing around corners and projections—but
it was all music to the King, now that he was snug and comfortable: let it
blow and rage, let it batter and bang, let it moan and wail, he minded it
not, he only enjoyed it. He merely snuggled the closer to his
friend, in a luxury of warm contentment, and drifted blissfully out of
consciousness into a deep and dreamless sleep that was full of serenity
and peace. The distant dogs howled, the melancholy kine complained,
and the winds went on raging, whilst furious sheets of rain drove along
the roof; but the Majesty of England slept on, undisturbed, and the calf
did the same, it being a simple creature, and not easily troubled by
storms or embarrassed by sleeping with a king.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c19" id="c19"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link19-235" id="link19-235"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link19-235.jpg (57K)" src="images/19-235.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XIX. The Prince with the peasants.</p>
<p>When the King awoke in the early morning, he found that a wet but
thoughtful rat had crept into the place during the night and made a cosy
bed for itself in his bosom. Being disturbed now, it scampered away.
The boy smiled, and said, “Poor fool, why so fearful? I am as
forlorn as thou. ’Twould be a sham in me to hurt the helpless,
who am myself so helpless. Moreover, I owe you thanks for a good
omen; for when a king has fallen so low that the very rats do make a bed
of him, it surely meaneth that his fortunes be upon the turn, since it is
plain he can no lower go.”</p>
<p>He got up and stepped out of the stall, and just then he heard the sound
of children’s voices. The barn door opened and a couple of
little girls came in. As soon as they saw him their talking and
laughing ceased, and they stopped and stood still, gazing at him with
strong curiosity; they presently began to whisper together, then they
approached nearer, and stopped again to gaze and whisper. By-and-by
they gathered courage and began to discuss him aloud. One said—</p>
<p>“He hath a comely face.”</p>
<p>The other added—</p>
<p>“And pretty hair.”</p>
<p>“But is ill clothed enow.”</p>
<p>“And how starved he looketh.”</p>
<p>They came still nearer, sidling shyly around and about him, examining him
minutely from all points, as if he were some strange new kind of animal,
but warily and watchfully the while, as if they half feared he might be a
sort of animal that would bite, upon occasion. Finally they halted
before him, holding each other’s hands for protection, and took a
good satisfying stare with their innocent eyes; then one of them plucked
up all her courage and inquired with honest directness—</p>
<p>“Who art thou, boy?”</p>
<p>“I am the King,” was the grave answer.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link19-239" id="link19-239"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link19-239.jpg (71K)" src="images/19-239.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The children gave a little start, and their eyes spread themselves wide
open and remained so during a speechless half minute. Then curiosity
broke the silence—</p>
<p>“The <i>King</i>? What King?”</p>
<p>“The King of England.”</p>
<p>The children looked at each other—then at him—then at each
other again—wonderingly, perplexedly; then one said—</p>
<p>“Didst hear him, Margery?—he said he is the King. Can
that be true?”</p>
<p>“How can it be else but true, Prissy? Would he say a lie?
For look you, Prissy, an’ it were not true, it <i>would</i> be
a lie. It surely would be. Now think on’t. For all
things that be not true, be lies—thou canst make nought else out of
it.”</p>
<p>It was a good tight argument, without a leak in it anywhere; and it left
Prissy’s half-doubts not a leg to stand on. She considered a
moment, then put the King upon his honour with the simple remark—</p>
<p>“If thou art truly the King, then I believe thee.”</p>
<p>“I am truly the King.”</p>
<p>This settled the matter. His Majesty’s royalty was accepted
without further question or discussion, and the two little girls began at
once to inquire into how he came to be where he was, and how he came to be
so unroyally clad, and whither he was bound, and all about his affairs.
It was a mighty relief to him to pour out his troubles where they
would not be scoffed at or doubted; so he told his tale with feeling,
forgetting even his hunger for the time; and it was received with the
deepest and tenderest sympathy by the gentle little maids. But when
he got down to his latest experiences and they learned how long he had
been without food, they cut him short and hurried him away to the
farmhouse to find a breakfast for him.</p>
<p>The King was cheerful and happy now, and said to himself, “When I am
come to mine own again, I will always honour little children, remembering
how that these trusted me and believed in me in my time of trouble; whilst
they that were older, and thought themselves wiser, mocked at me and held
me for a liar.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link19-240" id="link19-240"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link19-240.jpg (103K)" src="images/19-240.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The children’s mother received the King kindly, and was full of
pity; for his forlorn condition and apparently crazed intellect touched
her womanly heart. She was a widow, and rather poor; consequently
she had seen trouble enough to enable her to feel for the unfortunate.
She imagined that the demented boy had wandered away from his
friends or keepers; so she tried to find out whence he had come, in order
that she might take measures to return him; but all her references to
neighbouring towns and villages, and all her inquiries in the same line
went for nothing—the boy’s face, and his answers, too, showed
that the things she was talking of were not familiar to him. He
spoke earnestly and simply about court matters, and broke down, more than
once, when speaking of the late King ‘his father’; but
whenever the conversation changed to baser topics, he lost interest and
became silent.</p>
<p>The woman was mightily puzzled; but she did not give up. As she
proceeded with her cooking, she set herself to contriving devices to
surprise the boy into betraying his real secret. She talked about
cattle—he showed no concern; then about sheep—the same result:
so her guess that he had been a shepherd boy was an error; she
talked about mills; and about weavers, tinkers, smiths, trades and
tradesmen of all sorts; and about Bedlam, and jails, and charitable
retreats: but no matter, she was baffled at all points. Not
altogether, either; for she argued that she had narrowed the thing down to
domestic service. Yes, she was sure she was on the right track, now;
he must have been a house servant. So she led up to that. But
the result was discouraging. The subject of sweeping appeared to weary
him; fire-building failed to stir him; scrubbing and scouring awoke no
enthusiasm. The goodwife touched, with a perishing hope, and rather as a
matter of form, upon the subject of cooking. To her surprise, and
her vast delight, the King’s face lighted at once! Ah, she had
hunted him down at last, she thought; and she was right proud, too, of the
devious shrewdness and tact which had accomplished it.</p>
<p>Her tired tongue got a chance to rest, now; for the King’s, inspired
by gnawing hunger and the fragrant smells that came from the sputtering
pots and pans, turned itself loose and delivered itself up to such an
eloquent dissertation upon certain toothsome dishes, that within three
minutes the woman said to herself, “Of a truth I was right—he
hath holpen in a kitchen!” Then he broadened his bill of fare,
and discussed it with such appreciation and animation, that the goodwife
said to herself, “Good lack! how can he know so many dishes, and so
fine ones withal? For these belong only upon the tables of the rich
and great. Ah, now I see! ragged outcast as he is, he must have
served in the palace before his reason went astray; yes, he must have
helped in the very kitchen of the King himself! I will test him.”</p>
<p>Full of eagerness to prove her sagacity, she told the King to mind the
cooking a moment—hinting that he might manufacture and add a dish or
two, if he chose; then she went out of the room and gave her children a
sign to follow after. The King muttered—</p>
<p>“Another English king had a commission like to this, in a bygone
time—it is nothing against my dignity to undertake an office which
the great Alfred stooped to assume. But I will try to better serve
my trust than he; for he let the cakes burn.”</p>
<p>The intent was good, but the performance was not answerable to it, for
this King, like the other one, soon fell into deep thinkings concerning
his vast affairs, and the same calamity resulted—the cookery got
burned. The woman returned in time to save the breakfast from entire
destruction; and she promptly brought the King out of his dreams with a
brisk and cordial tongue-lashing. Then, seeing how troubled he was over
his violated trust, she softened at once, and was all goodness and
gentleness toward him.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link19-242" id="link19-242"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link19-242.jpg (145K)" src="images/19-242.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The boy made a hearty and satisfying meal, and was greatly refreshed and
gladdened by it. It was a meal which was distinguished by this
curious feature, that rank was waived on both sides; yet neither recipient
of the favour was aware that it had been extended. The goodwife had
intended to feed this young tramp with broken victuals in a corner, like
any other tramp or like a dog; but she was so remorseful for the scolding
she had given him, that she did what she could to atone for it by allowing
him to sit at the family table and eat with his betters, on ostensible
terms of equality with them; and the King, on his side, was so remorseful
for having broken his trust, after the family had been so kind to him,
that he forced himself to atone for it by humbling himself to the family
level, instead of requiring the woman and her children to stand and wait
upon him, while he occupied their table in the solitary state due to his
birth and dignity. It does us all good to unbend sometimes. This
good woman was made happy all the day long by the applauses which she got
out of herself for her magnanimous condescension to a tramp; and the King
was just as self-complacent over his gracious humility toward a humble
peasant woman.</p>
<p>When breakfast was over, the housewife told the King to wash up the
dishes. This command was a staggerer, for a moment, and the King
came near rebelling; but then he said to himself, “Alfred the Great
watched the cakes; doubtless he would have washed the dishes too—therefore
will I essay it.”</p>
<p>He made a sufficiently poor job of it; and to his surprise too, for the
cleaning of wooden spoons and trenchers had seemed an easy thing to do. It
was a tedious and troublesome piece of work, but he finished it at last.
He was becoming impatient to get away on his journey now; however,
he was not to lose this thrifty dame’s society so easily. She
furnished him some little odds and ends of employment, which he got
through with after a fair fashion and with some credit. Then she set
him and the little girls to paring some winter apples; but he was so
awkward at this service that she retired him from it and gave him a
butcher knife to grind.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link19-244" id="link19-244"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link19-244.jpg (129K)" src="images/19-244.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Afterwards she kept him carding wool until he began to think he had laid
the good King Alfred about far enough in the shade for the present in the
matter of showy menial heroisms that would read picturesquely in
story-books and histories, and so he was half-minded to resign. And
when, just after the noonday dinner, the goodwife gave him a basket of
kittens to drown, he did resign. At least he was just going to
resign—for he felt that he must draw the line somewhere, and it
seemed to him that to draw it at kitten-drowning was about the right thing—when
there was an interruption. The interruption was John Canty—with
a peddler’s pack on his back—and Hugo.</p>
<p>The King discovered these rascals approaching the front gate before they
had had a chance to see him; so he said nothing about drawing the line,
but took up his basket of kittens and stepped quietly out the back way,
without a word. He left the creatures in an out-house, and hurried
on, into a narrow lane at the rear.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c20" id="c20"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link20-245" id="link20-245"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-245.jpg (42K)" src="images/20-245.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XX. The Prince and the hermit.</p>
<p>The high hedge hid him from the house, now; and so, under the impulse of a
deadly fright, he let out all his forces and sped toward a wood in the
distance. He never looked back until he had almost gained the
shelter of the forest; then he turned and descried two figures in the
distance. That was sufficient; he did not wait to scan them critically,
but hurried on, and never abated his pace till he was far within the
twilight depths of the wood. Then he stopped; being persuaded that he was
now tolerably safe. He listened intently, but the stillness was profound
and solemn—awful, even, and depressing to the spirits. At wide
intervals his straining ear did detect sounds, but they were so remote,
and hollow, and mysterious, that they seemed not to be real sounds, but
only the moaning and complaining ghosts of departed ones. So the
sounds were yet more dreary than the silence which they interrupted.</p>
<p>It was his purpose, in the beginning, to stay where he was the rest of the
day; but a chill soon invaded his perspiring body, and he was at last
obliged to resume movement in order to get warm. He struck straight
through the forest, hoping to pierce to a road presently, but he was
disappointed in this. He travelled on and on; but the farther he
went, the denser the wood became, apparently. The gloom began to
thicken, by-and-by, and the King realised that the night was coming on.
It made him shudder to think of spending it in such an uncanny
place; so he tried to hurry faster, but he only made the less speed, for
he could not now see well enough to choose his steps judiciously;
consequently he kept tripping over roots and tangling himself in vines and
briers.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link20-248" id="link20-248"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-248.jpg (160K)" src="images/20-248.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>And how glad he was when at last he caught the glimmer of a light! He
approached it warily, stopping often to look about him and listen. It
came from an unglazed window-opening in a shabby little hut. He
heard a voice, now, and felt a disposition to run and hide; but he changed
his mind at once, for this voice was praying, evidently. He glided
to the one window of the hut, raised himself on tiptoe, and stole a glance
within. The room was small; its floor was the natural earth, beaten
hard by use; in a corner was a bed of rushes and a ragged blanket or two;
near it was a pail, a cup, a basin, and two or three pots and pans; there
was a short bench and a three-legged stool; on the hearth the remains of a
faggot fire were smouldering; before a shrine, which was lighted by a
single candle, knelt an aged man, and on an old wooden box at his side lay
an open book and a human skull. The man was of large, bony frame;
his hair and whiskers were very long and snowy white; he was clothed in a
robe of sheepskins which reached from his neck to his heels.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link20-249" id="link20-249"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-249.jpg (139K)" src="images/20-249.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“A holy hermit!” said the King to himself; “now am I
indeed fortunate.”</p>
<p>The hermit rose from his knees; the King knocked. A deep voice
responded—</p>
<p>“Enter!—but leave sin behind, for the ground whereon thou
shalt stand is holy!”</p>
<p>The King entered, and paused. The hermit turned a pair of gleaming,
unrestful eyes upon him, and said—</p>
<p>“Who art thou?”</p>
<p>“I am the King,” came the answer, with placid simplicity.</p>
<p>“Welcome, King!” cried the hermit, with enthusiasm. Then,
bustling about with feverish activity, and constantly saying, “Welcome,
welcome,” he arranged his bench, seated the King on it, by the
hearth, threw some faggots on the fire, and finally fell to pacing the
floor with a nervous stride.</p>
<p>“Welcome! Many have sought sanctuary here, but they were not
worthy, and were turned away. But a King who casts his crown away,
and despises the vain splendours of his office, and clothes his body in
rags, to devote his life to holiness and the mortification of the flesh—he
is worthy, he is welcome!—here shall he abide all his days till
death come.” The King hastened to interrupt and explain, but
the hermit paid no attention to him—did not even hear him,
apparently, but went right on with his talk, with a raised voice and a
growing energy. "And thou shalt be at peace here. None shall
find out thy refuge to disquiet thee with supplications to return to that
empty and foolish life which God hath moved thee to abandon. Thou
shalt pray here; thou shalt study the Book; thou shalt meditate upon the
follies and delusions of this world, and upon the sublimities of the world
to come; thou shalt feed upon crusts and herbs, and scourge thy body with
whips, daily, to the purifying of thy soul. Thou shalt wear a hair shirt
next thy skin; thou shalt drink water only; and thou shalt be at peace;
yes, wholly at peace; for whoso comes to seek thee shall go his way again,
baffled; he shall not find thee, he shall not molest thee.”</p>
<p>The old man, still pacing back and forth, ceased to speak aloud, and began
to mutter. The King seized this opportunity to state his case; and
he did it with an eloquence inspired by uneasiness and apprehension.
But the hermit went on muttering, and gave no heed. And still
muttering, he approached the King and said impressively—</p>
<p>“’Sh! I will tell you a secret!” He bent
down to impart it, but checked himself, and assumed a listening attitude.
After a moment or two he went on tiptoe to the window-opening, put
his head out, and peered around in the gloaming, then came tiptoeing back
again, put his face close down to the King’s, and whispered—</p>
<p>“I am an archangel!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link20-251" id="link20-251"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-251.jpg (65K)" src="images/20-251.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King started violently, and said to himself, “Would God I were
with the outlaws again; for lo, now am I the prisoner of a madman!”
His apprehensions were heightened, and they showed plainly in his
face. In a low excited voice the hermit continued—</p>
<p>“I see you feel my atmosphere! There’s awe in your face!
None may be in this atmosphere and not be thus affected; for it is
the very atmosphere of heaven. I go thither and return, in the
twinkling of an eye. I was made an archangel on this very spot, it
is five years ago, by angels sent from heaven to confer that awful
dignity. Their presence filled this place with an intolerable
brightness. And they knelt to me, King! yes, they knelt to me! for I
was greater than they. I have walked in the courts of heaven, and
held speech with the patriarchs. Touch my hand—be not afraid—touch
it. There—now thou hast touched a hand which has been clasped
by Abraham and Isaac and Jacob! For I have walked in the golden
courts; I have seen the Deity face to face!” He paused, to
give this speech effect; then his face suddenly changed, and he started to
his feet again saying, with angry energy, “Yes, I am an archangel;
<i>a mere archangel!</i>—I that might have been pope! It is
verily true. I was told it from heaven in a dream, twenty years ago;
ah, yes, I was to be pope!—and I <i>should</i> have been pope, for
Heaven had said it—but the King dissolved my religious house, and I,
poor obscure unfriended monk, was cast homeless upon the world, robbed of
my mighty destiny!” Here he began to mumble again, and beat his
forehead in futile rage, with his fist; now and then articulating a
venomous curse, and now and then a pathetic “Wherefore I am nought
but an archangel—I that should have been pope!”</p>
<p>So he went on, for an hour, whilst the poor little King sat and suffered.
Then all at once the old man’s frenzy departed, and he became all
gentleness. His voice softened, he came down out of his clouds, and
fell to prattling along so simply and so humanly, that he soon won the
King’s heart completely. The old devotee moved the boy nearer
to the fire and made him comfortable; doctored his small bruises and
abrasions with a deft and tender hand; and then set about preparing and
cooking a supper—chatting pleasantly all the time, and occasionally
stroking the lad’s cheek or patting his head, in such a gently
caressing way that in a little while all the fear and repulsion inspired
by the archangel were changed to reverence and affection for the man.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link20-253" id="link20-253"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-253.jpg (131K)" src="images/20-253.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>This happy state of things continued while the two ate the supper; then,
after a prayer before the shrine, the hermit put the boy to bed, in a
small adjoining room, tucking him in as snugly and lovingly as a mother
might; and so, with a parting caress, left him and sat down by the fire,
and began to poke the brands about in an absent and aimless way. Presently
he paused; then tapped his forehead several times with his fingers, as if
trying to recall some thought which had escaped from his mind. Apparently
he was unsuccessful. Now he started quickly up, and entered his
guest’s room, and said—</p>
<p>“Thou art King?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” was the response, drowsily uttered.</p>
<p>“What King?”</p>
<p>“Of England.”</p>
<p>“Of England? Then Henry is gone!”</p>
<p>“Alack, it is so. I am his son.”</p>
<p>A black frown settled down upon the hermit’s face, and he clenched
his bony hands with a vindictive energy. He stood a few moments,
breathing fast and swallowing repeatedly, then said in a husky voice—</p>
<p>“Dost know it was he that turned us out into the world houseless and
homeless?”</p>
<p>There was no response. The old man bent down and scanned the boy’s
reposeful face and listened to his placid breathing. "He sleeps—sleeps
soundly;” and the frown vanished away and gave place to an
expression of evil satisfaction. A smile flitted across the dreaming
boy’s features. The hermit muttered, “So—his heart is
happy;” and he turned away. He went stealthily about the
place, seeking here and there for something; now and then halting to
listen, now and then jerking his head around and casting a quick glance
toward the bed; and always muttering, always mumbling to himself. At
last he found what he seemed to want—a rusty old butcher knife and a
whetstone. Then he crept to his place by the fire, sat himself down,
and began to whet the knife softly on the stone, still muttering,
mumbling, ejaculating. The winds sighed around the lonely place, the
mysterious voices of the night floated by out of the distances. The
shining eyes of venturesome mice and rats peered out at the old man from
cracks and coverts, but he went on with his work, rapt, absorbed, and
noted none of these things.</p>
<p>At long intervals he drew his thumb along the edge of his knife, and
nodded his head with satisfaction. "It grows sharper,” he
said; “yes, it grows sharper.”</p>
<p>He took no note of the flight of time, but worked tranquilly on,
entertaining himself with his thoughts, which broke out occasionally in
articulate speech—</p>
<p>“His father wrought us evil, he destroyed us—and is gone down
into the eternal fires! Yes, down into the eternal fires! He
escaped us—but it was God’s will, yes it was God’s will,
we must not repine. But he hath not escaped the fires! No, he
hath not escaped the fires, the consuming, unpitying, remorseless fires—and
<i>they</i> are everlasting!”</p>
<p>And so he wrought, and still wrought—mumbling, chuckling a low
rasping chuckle at times—and at times breaking again into words—</p>
<p>“It was his father that did it all. I am but an archangel; but
for him I should be pope!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link20-255" id="link20-255"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-255.jpg (128K)" src="images/20-255.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King stirred. The hermit sprang noiselessly to the bedside, and
went down upon his knees, bending over the prostrate form with his knife
uplifted. The boy stirred again; his eyes came open for an instant,
but there was no speculation in them, they saw nothing; the next moment
his tranquil breathing showed that his sleep was sound once more.</p>
<p>The hermit watched and listened, for a time, keeping his position and
scarcely breathing; then he slowly lowered his arms, and presently crept
away, saying,—</p>
<p>“It is long past midnight; it is not best that he should cry out,
lest by accident someone be passing.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link20-256" id="link20-256"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link20-256.jpg (69K)" src="images/20-256.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He glided about his hovel, gathering a rag here, a thong there, and
another one yonder; then he returned, and by careful and gentle handling
he managed to tie the King’s ankles together without waking him.
Next he essayed to tie the wrists; he made several attempts to cross
them, but the boy always drew one hand or the other away, just as the cord
was ready to be applied; but at last, when the archangel was almost ready
to despair, the boy crossed his hands himself, and the next moment they
were bound. Now a bandage was passed under the sleeper’s chin and
brought up over his head and tied fast—and so softly, so gradually,
and so deftly were the knots drawn together and compacted, that the boy
slept peacefully through it all without stirring.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c21" id="c21"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link21-257" id="link21-257"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link21-257.jpg (51K)" src="images/21-257.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXI. Hendon to the rescue.</p>
<p>The old man glided away, stooping, stealthy, cat-like, and brought the low
bench. He seated himself upon it, half his body in the dim and
flickering light, and the other half in shadow; and so, with his craving
eyes bent upon the slumbering boy, he kept his patient vigil there,
heedless of the drift of time, and softly whetted his knife, and mumbled
and chuckled; and in aspect and attitude he resembled nothing so much as a
grizzly, monstrous spider, gloating over some hapless insect that lay
bound and helpless in his web.</p>
<p>After a long while, the old man, who was still gazing,—yet not
seeing, his mind having settled into a dreamy abstraction,—observed,
on a sudden, that the boy’s eyes were open! wide open and staring!—staring
up in frozen horror at the knife. The smile of a gratified devil
crept over the old man’s face, and he said, without changing his
attitude or his occupation—</p>
<p>“Son of Henry the Eighth, hast thou prayed?”</p>
<p>The boy struggled helplessly in his bonds, and at the same time forced a
smothered sound through his closed jaws, which the hermit chose to
interpret as an affirmative answer to his question.</p>
<p>“Then pray again. Pray the prayer for the dying!”</p>
<p>A shudder shook the boy’s frame, and his face blenched. Then
he struggled again to free himself—turning and twisting himself this
way and that; tugging frantically, fiercely, desperately—but
uselessly—to burst his fetters; and all the while the old ogre
smiled down upon him, and nodded his head, and placidly whetted his knife;
mumbling, from time to time, “The moments are precious, they are few
and precious—pray the prayer for the dying!”</p>
<p>The boy uttered a despairing groan, and ceased from his struggles,
panting. The tears came, then, and trickled, one after the other,
down his face; but this piteous sight wrought no softening effect upon the
savage old man.</p>
<p>The dawn was coming now; the hermit observed it, and spoke up sharply,
with a touch of nervous apprehension in his voice—</p>
<p>“I may not indulge this ecstasy longer! The night is already
gone. It seems but a moment—only a moment; would it had
endured a year! Seed of the Church’s spoiler, close thy
perishing eyes, an’ thou fearest to look upon—”</p>
<p>The rest was lost in inarticulate mutterings. The old man sank upon
his knees, his knife in his hand, and bent himself over the moaning boy.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link21-260" id="link21-260"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link21-260.jpg (111K)" src="images/21-260.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hark! There was a sound of voices near the cabin—the knife
dropped from the hermit’s hand; he cast a sheepskin over the boy and
started up, trembling. The sounds increased, and presently the
voices became rough and angry; then came blows, and cries for help; then a
clatter of swift footsteps, retreating. Immediately came a
succession of thundering knocks upon the cabin door, followed by—</p>
<p>“Hullo-o-o! Open! And despatch, in the name of all the
devils!”</p>
<p>Oh, this was the blessedest sound that had ever made music in the King’s
ears; for it was Miles Hendon’s voice!</p>
<p>The hermit, grinding his teeth in impotent rage, moved swiftly out of the
bedchamber, closing the door behind him; and straightway the King heard a
talk, to this effect, proceeding from the ‘chapel’:—</p>
<p>“Homage and greeting, reverend sir! Where is the boy—<i>my</i>
boy?”</p>
<p>“What boy, friend?”</p>
<p>“What boy! Lie me no lies, sir priest, play me no deceptions!—I
am not in the humour for it. Near to this place I caught the
scoundrels who I judged did steal him from me, and I made them confess;
they said he was at large again, and they had tracked him to your door.
They showed me his very footprints. Now palter no more; for
look you, holy sir, an’ thou produce him not—Where is the boy?”</p>
<p>“O good sir, peradventure you mean the ragged regal vagrant that
tarried here the night. If such as you take an interest in such as
he, know, then, that I have sent him of an errand. He will be back
anon.”</p>
<p>“How soon? How soon? Come, waste not the time—cannot
I overtake him? How soon will he be back?”</p>
<p>“Thou need’st not stir; he will return quickly.”</p>
<p>“So be it, then. I will try to wait. But stop!—<i>you</i>
sent him of an errand?—you! Verily this is a lie—he
would not go. He would pull thy old beard, an’ thou didst
offer him such an insolence. Thou hast lied, friend; thou hast surely
lied! He would not go for thee, nor for any man.”</p>
<p>“For any <i>man</i>—no; haply not. But I am not a man.”</p>
<p>“<i>What</i>! Now o’ God’s name what art thou,
then?”</p>
<p>“It is a secret—mark thou reveal it not. I am an
archangel!”</p>
<p>There was a tremendous ejaculation from Miles Hendon—not altogether
unprofane—followed by—</p>
<p>“This doth well and truly account for his complaisance! Right
well I knew he would budge nor hand nor foot in the menial service of any
mortal; but, lord, even a king must obey when an archangel gives the word
o’ command! Let me—’sh! What noise was that?”</p>
<p>All this while the little King had been yonder, alternately quaking with
terror and trembling with hope; and all the while, too, he had thrown all
the strength he could into his anguished moanings, constantly expecting
them to reach Hendon’s ear, but always realising, with bitterness,
that they failed, or at least made no impression. So this last
remark of his servant came as comes a reviving breath from fresh fields to
the dying; and he exerted himself once more, and with all his energy, just
as the hermit was saying—</p>
<p>“Noise? I heard only the wind.”</p>
<p>“Mayhap it was. Yes, doubtless that was it. I have been
hearing it faintly all the—there it is again! It is not the
wind! What an odd sound! Come, we will hunt it out!”</p>
<p>Now the King’s joy was nearly insupportable. His tired lungs
did their utmost—and hopefully, too—but the sealed jaws and
the muffling sheepskin sadly crippled the effort. Then the poor
fellow’s heart sank, to hear the hermit say—</p>
<p>“Ah, it came from without—I think from the copse yonder.
Come, I will lead the way.”</p>
<p>The King heard the two pass out, talking; heard their footsteps die
quickly away—then he was alone with a boding, brooding, awful
silence.</p>
<p>It seemed an age till he heard the steps and voices approaching again—and
this time he heard an added sound,—the trampling of hoofs,
apparently. Then he heard Hendon say—</p>
<p>“I will not wait longer. I <i>cannot</i> wait longer. He
has lost his way in this thick wood. Which direction took he? Quick—point
it out to me.”</p>
<p>“He—but wait; I will go with thee.”</p>
<p>“Good—good! Why, truly thou art better than thy looks.
Marry I do not think there’s not another archangel with so
right a heart as thine. Wilt ride? Wilt take the wee donkey
that’s for my boy, or wilt thou fork thy holy legs over this
ill-conditioned slave of a mule that I have provided for myself?—and
had been cheated in too, had he cost but the indifferent sum of a month’s
usury on a brass farthing let to a tinker out of work.”</p>
<p>“No—ride thy mule, and lead thine ass; I am surer on mine own
feet, and will walk.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link21-262" id="link21-262"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link21-262.jpg (97K)" src="images/21-262.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Then prithee mind the little beast for me while I take my life in
my hands and make what success I may toward mounting the big one.”</p>
<p>Then followed a confusion of kicks, cuffs, tramplings and plungings,
accompanied by a thunderous intermingling of volleyed curses, and finally
a bitter apostrophe to the mule, which must have broken its spirit, for
hostilities seemed to cease from that moment.</p>
<p>With unutterable misery the fettered little King heard the voices and
footsteps fade away and die out. All hope forsook him, now, for the
moment, and a dull despair settled down upon his heart. “My only
friend is deceived and got rid of,” he said; “the hermit will
return and—” He finished with a gasp; and at once fell
to struggling so frantically with his bonds again, that he shook off the
smothering sheepskin.</p>
<p>And now he heard the door open! The sound chilled him to the marrow—already
he seemed to feel the knife at his throat. Horror made him close his
eyes; horror made him open them again—and before him stood John
Canty and Hugo!</p>
<p><SPAN name="link21-264" id="link21-264"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link21-264.jpg (96K)" src="images/21-264.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He would have said “Thank God!” if his jaws had been free.</p>
<p>A moment or two later his limbs were at liberty, and his captors, each
gripping him by an arm, were hurrying him with all speed through the
forest.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c22" id="c22"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link22-267" id="link22-267"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link22-267.jpg (44K)" src="images/22-267.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXII. A Victim of Treachery.</p>
<p>Once more ‘King Foo-foo the First’ was roving with the tramps
and outlaws, a butt for their coarse jests and dull-witted railleries, and
sometimes the victim of small spitefulness at the hands of Canty and Hugo
when the Ruffler’s back was turned. None but Canty and Hugo
really disliked him. Some of the others liked him, and all admired
his pluck and spirit. During two or three days, Hugo, in whose ward
and charge the King was, did what he covertly could to make the boy
uncomfortable; and at night, during the customary orgies, he amused the
company by putting small indignities upon him—always as if by
accident. Twice he stepped upon the King’s toes—accidentally—and
the King, as became his royalty, was contemptuously unconscious of it and
indifferent to it; but the third time Hugo entertained himself in that
way, the King felled him to the ground with a cudgel, to the prodigious
delight of the tribe. Hugo, consumed with anger and shame, sprang
up, seized a cudgel, and came at his small adversary in a fury. Instantly
a ring was formed around the gladiators, and the betting and cheering
began.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link22-270" id="link22-270"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link22-270.jpg (85K)" src="images/22-270.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>But poor Hugo stood no chance whatever. His frantic and lubberly
’prentice-work found but a poor market for itself when pitted
against an arm which had been trained by the first masters of Europe in
single-stick, quarter-staff, and every art and trick of swordsmanship.
The little King stood, alert but at graceful ease, and caught and
turned aside the thick rain of blows with a facility and precision which
set the motley on-lookers wild with admiration; and every now and then,
when his practised eye detected an opening, and a lightning-swift rap upon
Hugo’s head followed as a result, the storm of cheers and laughter
that swept the place was something wonderful to hear. At the end of
fifteen minutes, Hugo, all battered, bruised, and the target for a
pitiless bombardment of ridicule, slunk from the field; and the unscathed
hero of the fight was seized and borne aloft upon the shoulders of the
joyous rabble to the place of honour beside the Ruffler, where with vast
ceremony he was crowned King of the Game-Cocks; his meaner title being at
the same time solemnly cancelled and annulled, and a decree of banishment
from the gang pronounced against any who should thenceforth utter it.</p>
<p>All attempts to make the King serviceable to the troop had failed. He had
stubbornly refused to act; moreover, he was always trying to escape.
He had been thrust into an unwatched kitchen, the first day of his
return; he not only came forth empty-handed, but tried to rouse the
housemates. He was sent out with a tinker to help him at his work; he
would not work; moreover, he threatened the tinker with his own
soldering-iron; and finally both Hugo and the tinker found their hands
full with the mere matter of keeping his from getting away. He
delivered the thunders of his royalty upon the heads of all who hampered
his liberties or tried to force him to service. He was sent out, in
Hugo’s charge, in company with a slatternly woman and a diseased
baby, to beg; but the result was not encouraging—he declined to
plead for the mendicants, or be a party to their cause in any way.</p>
<p>Thus several days went by; and the miseries of this tramping life, and the
weariness and sordidness and meanness and vulgarity of it, became
gradually and steadily so intolerable to the captive that he began at last
to feel that his release from the hermit’s knife must prove only a
temporary respite from death, at best.</p>
<p>But at night, in his dreams, these things were forgotten, and he was on
his throne, and master again. This, of course, intensified the
sufferings of the awakening—so the mortifications of each succeeding
morning of the few that passed between his return to bondage and the
combat with Hugo, grew bitterer and bitterer, and harder and harder to
bear.</p>
<p>The morning after that combat, Hugo got up with a heart filled with
vengeful purposes against the King. He had two plans, in particular.
One was to inflict upon the lad what would be, to his proud spirit and
‘imagined’ royalty, a peculiar humiliation; and if he failed
to accomplish this, his other plan was to put a crime of some kind upon
the King, and then betray him into the implacable clutches of the law.</p>
<p>In pursuance of the first plan, he purposed to put a ‘clime’
upon the King’s leg; rightly judging that that would mortify him to
the last and perfect degree; and as soon as the clime should operate, he
meant to get Canty’s help, and <i>force</i> the King to expose his
leg in the highway and beg for alms. ’Clime’ was the
cant term for a sore, artificially created. To make a clime, the operator
made a paste or poultice of unslaked lime, soap, and the rust of old iron,
and spread it upon a piece of leather, which was then bound tightly upon
the leg. This would presently fret off the skin, and make the flesh
raw and angry-looking; blood was then rubbed upon the limb, which, being
fully dried, took on a dark and repulsive colour. Then a bandage of
soiled rags was put on in a cleverly careless way which would allow the
hideous ulcer to be seen, and move the compassion of the passer-by. {8}</p>
<p>Hugo got the help of the tinker whom the King had cowed with the
soldering-iron; they took the boy out on a tinkering tramp, and as soon as
they were out of sight of the camp they threw him down and the tinker held
him while Hugo bound the poultice tight and fast upon his leg.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link22-272" id="link22-272"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link22-272.jpg (139K)" src="images/22-272.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King raged and stormed, and promised to hang the two the moment the
sceptre was in his hand again; but they kept a firm grip upon him and
enjoyed his impotent struggling and jeered at his threats. This
continued until the poultice began to bite; and in no long time its work
would have been perfected, if there had been no interruption. But
there was; for about this time the ‘slave’ who had made the
speech denouncing England’s laws, appeared on the scene, and put an
end to the enterprise, and stripped off the poultice and bandage.</p>
<p>The King wanted to borrow his deliverer’s cudgel and warm the
jackets of the two rascals on the spot; but the man said no, it would
bring trouble—leave the matter till night; the whole tribe being
together, then, the outside world would not venture to interfere or
interrupt. He marched the party back to camp and reported the affair
to the Ruffler, who listened, pondered, and then decided that the King
should not be again detailed to beg, since it was plain he was worthy of
something higher and better—wherefore, on the spot he promoted him
from the mendicant rank and appointed him to steal!</p>
<p>Hugo was overjoyed. He had already tried to make the King steal, and
failed; but there would be no more trouble of that sort, now, for of
course the King would not dream of defying a distinct command delivered
directly from head-quarters. So he planned a raid for that very
afternoon, purposing to get the King in the law’s grip in the course
of it; and to do it, too, with such ingenious strategy, that it should
seem to be accidental and unintentional; for the King of the Game-Cocks
was popular now, and the gang might not deal over-gently with an unpopular
member who played so serious a treachery upon him as the delivering him
over to the common enemy, the law.</p>
<p>Very well. All in good time Hugo strolled off to a neighbouring
village with his prey; and the two drifted slowly up and down one street
after another, the one watching sharply for a sure chance to achieve his
evil purpose, and the other watching as sharply for a chance to dart away
and get free of his infamous captivity for ever.</p>
<p>Both threw away some tolerably fair-looking opportunities; for both, in
their secret hearts, were resolved to make absolutely sure work this time,
and neither meant to allow his fevered desires to seduce him into any
venture that had much uncertainty about it.</p>
<p>Hugo’s chance came first. For at last a woman approached who
carried a fat package of some sort in a basket. Hugo’s eyes
sparkled with sinful pleasure as he said to himself, “Breath o’
my life, an’ I can but put <i>that</i> upon him, ’tis good-den
and God keep thee, King of the Game-Cocks!” He waited and watched—outwardly
patient, but inwardly consuming with excitement—till the woman had
passed by, and the time was ripe; then said, in a low voice—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link22-274" id="link22-274"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link22-274.jpg (135K)" src="images/22-274.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Tarry here till I come again,” and darted stealthily after
the prey.</p>
<p>The King’s heart was filled with joy—he could make his escape,
now, if Hugo’s quest only carried him far enough away.</p>
<p>But he was to have no such luck. Hugo crept behind the woman,
snatched the package, and came running back, wrapping it in an old piece
of blanket which he carried on his arm. The hue and cry was raised
in a moment, by the woman, who knew her loss by the lightening of her
burden, although she had not seen the pilfering done. Hugo thrust
the bundle into the King’s hands without halting, saying—</p>
<p>“Now speed ye after me with the rest, and cry ‘Stop thief!’
but mind ye lead them astray!”</p>
<p>The next moment Hugo turned a corner and darted down a crooked alley—and
in another moment or two he lounged into view again, looking innocent and
indifferent, and took up a position behind a post to watch results.</p>
<p>The insulted King threw the bundle on the ground; and the blanket fell
away from it just as the woman arrived, with an augmenting crowd at her
heels; she seized the King’s wrist with one hand, snatched up her
bundle with the other, and began to pour out a tirade of abuse upon the
boy while he struggled, without success, to free himself from her grip.</p>
<p>Hugo had seen enough—his enemy was captured and the law would get
him, now—so he slipped away, jubilant and chuckling, and wended
campwards, framing a judicious version of the matter to give to the
Ruffler’s crew as he strode along.</p>
<p>The King continued to struggle in the woman’s strong grasp, and now
and then cried out in vexation—</p>
<p>“Unhand me, thou foolish creature; it was not I that bereaved thee
of thy paltry goods.”</p>
<p>The crowd closed around, threatening the King and calling him names; a
brawny blacksmith in leather apron, and sleeves rolled to his elbows, made
a reach for him, saying he would trounce him well, for a lesson; but just
then a long sword flashed in the air and fell with convincing force upon
the man’s arm, flat side down, the fantastic owner of it remarking
pleasantly, at the same time—</p>
<p>“Marry, good souls, let us proceed gently, not with ill blood and
uncharitable words. This is matter for the law’s
consideration, not private and unofficial handling. Loose thy hold
from the boy, goodwife.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link22-276" id="link22-276"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link22-276.jpg (140K)" src="images/22-276.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The blacksmith averaged the stalwart soldier with a glance, then went
muttering away, rubbing his arm; the woman released the boy’s wrist
reluctantly; the crowd eyed the stranger unlovingly, but prudently closed
their mouths. The King sprang to his deliverer’s side, with
flushed cheeks and sparkling eyes, exclaiming—</p>
<p>“Thou hast lagged sorely, but thou comest in good season, now, Sir
Miles; carve me this rabble to rags!”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c23" id="c23"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link23-279" id="link23-279"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link23-279.jpg (41K)" src="images/23-279.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXIII. The Prince a prisoner.</p>
<p>Hendon forced back a smile, and bent down and whispered in the King’s
ear—</p>
<p>“Softly, softly, my prince, wag thy tongue warily—nay, suffer
it not to wag at all. Trust in me—all shall go well in the
end.” Then he added to himself: “<i>Sir</i> Miles!
Bless me, I had totally forgot I was a knight! Lord, how marvellous
a thing it is, the grip his memory doth take upon his quaint and crazy
fancies! . . . An empty and foolish title is mine, and yet it is something
to have deserved it; for I think it is more honour to be held worthy to be
a spectre-knight in his Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows, than to be held
base enough to be an earl in some of the <i>real</i> kingdoms of this
world.”</p>
<p>The crowd fell apart to admit a constable, who approached and was about to
lay his hand upon the King’s shoulder, when Hendon said—</p>
<p>“Gently, good friend, withhold your hand—he shall go
peaceably; I am responsible for that. Lead on, we will follow.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link23-282" id="link23-282"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link23-282.jpg (90K)" src="images/23-282.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The officer led, with the woman and her bundle; Miles and the King
followed after, with the crowd at their heels. The King was inclined
to rebel; but Hendon said to him in a low voice—</p>
<p>“Reflect, Sire—your laws are the wholesome breath of your own
royalty; shall their source resist them, yet require the branches to
respect them? Apparently one of these laws has been broken; when the King
is on his throne again, can it ever grieve him to remember that when he
was seemingly a private person he loyally sank the king in the citizen and
submitted to its authority?”</p>
<p>“Thou art right; say no more; thou shalt see that whatsoever the
King of England requires a subject to suffer, under the law, he will
himself suffer while he holdeth the station of a subject.”</p>
<p>When the woman was called upon to testify before the justice of the peace,
she swore that the small prisoner at the bar was the person who had
committed the theft; there was none able to show the contrary, so the King
stood convicted. The bundle was now unrolled, and when the contents
proved to be a plump little dressed pig, the judge looked troubled, whilst
Hendon turned pale, and his body was thrilled with an electric shiver of
dismay; but the King remained unmoved, protected by his ignorance. The
judge meditated, during an ominous pause, then turned to the woman, with
the question—</p>
<p>“What dost thou hold this property to be worth?”</p>
<p>The woman courtesied and replied—</p>
<p>“Three shillings and eightpence, your worship—I could not
abate a penny and set forth the value honestly.”</p>
<p>The justice glanced around uncomfortably upon the crowd, then nodded to
the constable, and said—</p>
<p>“Clear the court and close the doors.”</p>
<p>It was done. None remained but the two officials, the accused, the
accuser, and Miles Hendon. This latter was rigid and colourless, and
on his forehead big drops of cold sweat gathered, broke and blended
together, and trickled down his face. The judge turned to the woman
again, and said, in a compassionate voice—</p>
<p>“’Tis a poor ignorant lad, and mayhap was driven hard by
hunger, for these be grievous times for the unfortunate; mark you, he hath
not an evil face—but when hunger driveth—Good woman! dost know
that when one steals a thing above the value of thirteenpence ha’penny
the law saith he shall <i>hang</i> for it?”</p>
<p>The little King started, wide-eyed with consternation, but controlled
himself and held his peace; but not so the woman. She sprang to her
feet, shaking with fright, and cried out—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link23-284" id="link23-284"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link23-284.jpg (143K)" src="images/23-284.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Oh, good lack, what have I done! God-a-mercy, I would not
hang the poor thing for the whole world! Ah, save me from this, your
worship—what shall I do, what <i>can</i> I do?”</p>
<p>The justice maintained his judicial composure, and simply said—</p>
<p>“Doubtless it is allowable to revise the value, since it is not yet
writ upon the record.”</p>
<p>“Then in God’s name call the pig eightpence, and heaven bless
the day that freed my conscience of this awesome thing!”</p>
<p>Miles Hendon forgot all decorum in his delight; and surprised the King and
wounded his dignity, by throwing his arms around him and hugging him. The
woman made her grateful adieux and started away with her pig; and when the
constable opened the door for her, he followed her out into the narrow
hall. The justice proceeded to write in his record book. Hendon,
always alert, thought he would like to know why the officer followed the
woman out; so he slipped softly into the dusky hall and listened. He
heard a conversation to this effect—</p>
<p>“It is a fat pig, and promises good eating; I will buy it of thee;
here is the eightpence.”</p>
<p>“Eightpence, indeed! Thou’lt do no such thing. It
cost me three shillings and eightpence, good honest coin of the last
reign, that old Harry that’s just dead ne’er touched or
tampered with. A fig for thy eightpence!”</p>
<p>“Stands the wind in that quarter? Thou wast under oath, and so
swore falsely when thou saidst the value was but eightpence. Come
straightway back with me before his worship, and answer for the crime!—and
then the lad will hang.”</p>
<p>“There, there, dear heart, say no more, I am content. Give me
the eightpence, and hold thy peace about the matter.”</p>
<p>The woman went off crying: Hendon slipped back into the court room,
and the constable presently followed, after hiding his prize in some
convenient place. The justice wrote a while longer, then read the
King a wise and kindly lecture, and sentenced him to a short imprisonment
in the common jail, to be followed by a public flogging. The
astounded King opened his mouth, and was probably going to order the good
judge to be beheaded on the spot; but he caught a warning sign from
Hendon, and succeeded in closing his mouth again before he lost anything
out of it. Hendon took him by the hand, now, made reverence to the
justice, and the two departed in the wake of the constable toward the
jail. The moment the street was reached, the inflamed monarch
halted, snatched away his hand, and exclaimed—</p>
<p>“Idiot, dost imagine I will enter a common jail <i>alive</i>?”</p>
<p>Hendon bent down and said, somewhat sharply—</p>
<p>“<i>Will</i> you trust in me? Peace! and forbear to worsen our
chances with dangerous speech. What God wills, will happen; thou
canst not hurry it, thou canst not alter it; therefore wait, and be
patient—’twill be time enow to rail or rejoice when what is to
happen has happened.” {1}</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c24" id="c24"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link24-287" id="link24-287"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link24-287.jpg (51K)" src="images/24-287.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXIV. The Escape.</p>
<p>The short winter day was nearly ended. The streets were deserted,
save for a few random stragglers, and these hurried straight along, with
the intent look of people who were only anxious to accomplish their
errands as quickly as possible, and then snugly house themselves from the
rising wind and the gathering twilight. They looked neither to the right
nor to the left; they paid no attention to our party, they did not even
seem to see them. Edward the Sixth wondered if the spectacle of a king on
his way to jail had ever encountered such marvellous indifference before.
By-and-by the constable arrived at a deserted market-square, and proceeded
to cross it. When he had reached the middle of it, Hendon laid his
hand upon his arm, and said in a low voice—</p>
<p>“Bide a moment, good sir, there is none in hearing, and I would say
a word to thee.”</p>
<p>“My duty forbids it, sir; prithee hinder me not, the night comes on.”</p>
<p>“Stay, nevertheless, for the matter concerns thee nearly. Turn
thy back a moment and seem not to see: <i>let this poor lad escape</i>.”</p>
<p>“This to me, sir! I arrest thee in—”</p>
<p>“Nay, be not too hasty. See thou be careful and commit no
foolish error,”—then he shut his voice down to a whisper, and
said in the man’s ear—“the pig thou hast purchased for
eightpence may cost thee thy neck, man!”</p>
<p>The poor constable, taken by surprise, was speechless, at first, then
found his tongue and fell to blustering and threatening; but Hendon was
tranquil, and waited with patience till his breath was spent; then said—</p>
<p>“I have a liking to thee, friend, and would not willingly see thee
come to harm. Observe, I heard it all—every word. I will
prove it to thee.” Then he repeated the conversation which the
officer and the woman had had together in the hall, word for word, and
ended with—</p>
<p>“There—have I set it forth correctly? Should not I be
able to set it forth correctly before the judge, if occasion required?”</p>
<p>The man was dumb with fear and distress, for a moment; then he rallied,
and said with forced lightness—</p>
<p>“’Tis making a mighty matter, indeed, out of a jest; I but
plagued the woman for mine amusement.”</p>
<p>“Kept you the woman’s pig for amusement?”</p>
<p>The man answered sharply—</p>
<p>“Nought else, good sir—I tell thee ’twas but a jest.”</p>
<p>“I do begin to believe thee,” said Hendon, with a perplexing
mixture of mockery and half-conviction in his tone; “but tarry thou
here a moment whilst I run and ask his worship—for nathless, he
being a man experienced in law, in jests, in—”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link24-290" id="link24-290"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link24-290.jpg (55K)" src="images/24-290.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He was moving away, still talking; the constable hesitated, fidgeted, spat
out an oath or two, then cried out—</p>
<p>“Hold, hold, good sir—prithee wait a little—the judge!
Why, man, he hath no more sympathy with a jest than hath a dead
corpse!—come, and we will speak further. Ods body! I
seem to be in evil case—and all for an innocent and thoughtless
pleasantry. I am a man of family; and my wife and little ones—List
to reason, good your worship: what wouldst thou of me?”</p>
<p>“Only that thou be blind and dumb and paralytic whilst one may count
a hundred thousand—counting slowly,” said Hendon, with the
expression of a man who asks but a reasonable favour, and that a very
little one.</p>
<p>“It is my destruction!” said the constable despairingly.
"Ah, be reasonable, good sir; only look at this matter, on all its
sides, and see how mere a jest it is—how manifestly and how plainly
it is so. And even if one granted it were not a jest, it is a fault
so small that e’en the grimmest penalty it could call forth would be
but a rebuke and warning from the judge’s lips.”</p>
<p>Hendon replied with a solemnity which chilled the air about him—</p>
<p>“This jest of thine hath a name, in law,—wot you what it is?”</p>
<p>“I knew it not! Peradventure I have been unwise. I never
dreamed it had a name—ah, sweet heaven, I thought it was original.”</p>
<p>“Yes, it hath a name. In the law this crime is called Non
compos mentis lex talionis sic transit gloria mundi.”</p>
<p>“Ah, my God!”</p>
<p>“And the penalty is death!”</p>
<p>“God be merciful to me a sinner!”</p>
<p>“By advantage taken of one in fault, in dire peril, and at thy
mercy, thou hast seized goods worth above thirteenpence ha’penny,
paying but a trifle for the same; and this, in the eye of the law, is
constructive barratry, misprision of treason, malfeasance in office, ad
hominem expurgatis in statu quo—and the penalty is death by the
halter, without ransom, commutation, or benefit of clergy.”</p>
<p>“Bear me up, bear me up, sweet sir, my legs do fail me! Be
thou merciful—spare me this doom, and I will turn my back and see
nought that shall happen.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link24-292" id="link24-292"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link24-292.jpg (157K)" src="images/24-292.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Good! now thou’rt wise and reasonable. And thou’lt
restore the pig?”</p>
<p>“I will, I will indeed—nor ever touch another, though heaven
send it and an archangel fetch it. Go—I am blind for thy sake—I
see nothing. I will say thou didst break in and wrest the prisoner
from my hands by force. It is but a crazy, ancient door—I will
batter it down myself betwixt midnight and the morning.”</p>
<p>“Do it, good soul, no harm will come of it; the judge hath a loving
charity for this poor lad, and will shed no tears and break no jailer’s
bones for his escape.”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c25" id="c25"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link25-293" id="link25-293"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-293.jpg (54K)" src="images/25-293.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXV. Hendon Hall.</p>
<p>As soon as Hendon and the King were out of sight of the constable, his
Majesty was instructed to hurry to a certain place outside the town, and
wait there, whilst Hendon should go to the inn and settle his account.
Half an hour later the two friends were blithely jogging eastward on
Hendon’s sorry steeds. The King was warm and comfortable, now,
for he had cast his rags and clothed himself in the second-hand suit which
Hendon had bought on London Bridge.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link25-296" id="link25-296"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-296.jpg (148K)" src="images/25-296.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hendon wished to guard against over-fatiguing the boy; he judged that hard
journeys, irregular meals, and illiberal measures of sleep would be bad
for his crazed mind; whilst rest, regularity, and moderate exercise would
be pretty sure to hasten its cure; he longed to see the stricken intellect
made well again and its diseased visions driven out of the tormented
little head; therefore he resolved to move by easy stages toward the home
whence he had so long been banished, instead of obeying the impulse of his
impatience and hurrying along night and day.</p>
<p>When he and the King had journeyed about ten miles, they reached a
considerable village, and halted there for the night, at a good inn.
The former relations were resumed; Hendon stood behind the King’s
chair, while he dined, and waited upon him; undressed him when he was
ready for bed; then took the floor for his own quarters, and slept athwart
the door, rolled up in a blanket.</p>
<p>The next day, and the day after, they jogged lazily along talking over the
adventures they had met since their separation, and mightily enjoying each
other’s narratives. Hendon detailed all his wide wanderings in
search of the King, and described how the archangel had led him a fool’s
journey all over the forest, and taken him back to the hut, finally, when
he found he could not get rid of him. Then—he said—the
old man went into the bedchamber and came staggering back looking
broken-hearted, and saying he had expected to find that the boy had
returned and laid down in there to rest, but it was not so. Hendon
had waited at the hut all day; hope of the King’s return died out,
then, and he departed upon the quest again.</p>
<p>“And old Sanctum Sanctorum <i>was</i> truly sorry your highness came
not back,” said Hendon; “I saw it in his face.”</p>
<p>“Marry I will never doubt <i>that</i>!” said the King—and
then told his own story; after which, Hendon was sorry he had not
destroyed the archangel.</p>
<p>During the last day of the trip, Hendon’s spirits were soaring. His
tongue ran constantly. He talked about his old father, and his
brother Arthur, and told of many things which illustrated their high and
generous characters; he went into loving frenzies over his Edith, and was
so glad-hearted that he was even able to say some gentle and brotherly
things about Hugh. He dwelt a deal on the coming meeting at Hendon
Hall; what a surprise it would be to everybody, and what an outburst of
thanksgiving and delight there would be.</p>
<p>It was a fair region, dotted with cottages and orchards, and the road led
through broad pasture lands whose receding expanses, marked with gentle
elevations and depressions, suggested the swelling and subsiding
undulations of the sea. In the afternoon the returning prodigal made
constant deflections from his course to see if by ascending some hillock
he might not pierce the distance and catch a glimpse of his home. At
last he was successful, and cried out excitedly—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link25-297" id="link25-297"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-297.jpg (108K)" src="images/25-297.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“There is the village, my Prince, and there is the Hall close by!
You may see the towers from here; and that wood there—that is my
father’s park. Ah, <i>now</i> thou’lt know what state and
grandeur be! A house with seventy rooms—think of that!—and
seven and twenty servants! A brave lodging for such as we, is it not
so? Come, let us speed—my impatience will not brook further
delay.”</p>
<p>All possible hurry was made; still, it was after three o’clock
before the village was reached. The travellers scampered through it,
Hendon’s tongue going all the time. "Here is the church—covered
with the same ivy—none gone, none added.” "Yonder is the
inn, the old Red Lion,—and yonder is the market-place.” "Here
is the Maypole, and here the pump—nothing is altered; nothing but
the people, at any rate; ten years make a change in people; some of these
I seem to know, but none know me.” So his chat ran on. The end
of the village was soon reached; then the travellers struck into a
crooked, narrow road, walled in with tall hedges, and hurried briskly
along it for half a mile, then passed into a vast flower garden through an
imposing gateway, whose huge stone pillars bore sculptured armorial
devices. A noble mansion was before them.</p>
<p>“Welcome to Hendon Hall, my King!” exclaimed Miles. "Ah,
’tis a great day! My father and my brother, and the Lady Edith
will be so mad with joy that they will have eyes and tongue for none but
me in the first transports of the meeting, and so thou’lt seem but
coldly welcomed—but mind it not; ’twill soon seem otherwise;
for when I say thou art my ward, and tell them how costly is my love for
thee, thou’lt see them take thee to their breasts for Miles Hendon’s
sake, and make their house and hearts thy home for ever after!”</p>
<p>The next moment Hendon sprang to the ground before the great door, helped
the King down, then took him by the hand and rushed within. A few steps
brought him to a spacious apartment; he entered, seated the King with more
hurry than ceremony, then ran toward a young man who sat at a
writing-table in front of a generous fire of logs.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link25-299" id="link25-299"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-299.jpg (107K)" src="images/25-299.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Embrace me, Hugh,” he cried, “and say thou’rt
glad I am come again! and call our father, for home is not home till I
shall touch his hand, and see his face, and hear his voice once more!”</p>
<p>But Hugh only drew back, after betraying a momentary surprise, and bent a
grave stare upon the intruder—a stare which indicated somewhat of
offended dignity, at first, then changed, in response to some inward
thought or purpose, to an expression of marvelling curiosity, mixed with a
real or assumed compassion. Presently he said, in a mild voice—</p>
<p>“Thy wits seem touched, poor stranger; doubtless thou hast suffered
privations and rude buffetings at the world’s hands; thy looks and
dress betoken it. Whom dost thou take me to be?”</p>
<p>“Take thee? Prithee for whom else than whom thou art? I
take thee to be Hugh Hendon,” said Miles, sharply.</p>
<p>The other continued, in the same soft tone—</p>
<p>“And whom dost thou imagine thyself to be?”</p>
<p>“Imagination hath nought to do with it! Dost thou pretend thou
knowest me not for thy brother Miles Hendon?”</p>
<p>An expression of pleased surprise flitted across Hugh’s face, and he
exclaimed—</p>
<p>“What! thou art not jesting? can the dead come to life? God be
praised if it be so! Our poor lost boy restored to our arms after
all these cruel years! Ah, it seems too good to be true, it <i>is</i>
too good to be true—I charge thee, have pity, do not trifle with me!
Quick—come to the light—let me scan thee well!”</p>
<p>He seized Miles by the arm, dragged him to the window, and began to devour
him from head to foot with his eyes, turning him this way and that, and
stepping briskly around him and about him to prove him from all points of
view; whilst the returned prodigal, all aglow with gladness, smiled,
laughed, and kept nodding his head and saying—</p>
<p>“Go on, brother, go on, and fear not; thou’lt find nor limb
nor feature that cannot bide the test. Scour and scan me to thy
content, my good old Hugh—I am indeed thy old Miles, thy same old
Miles, thy lost brother, is’t not so? Ah, ’tis a great
day—I <i>said</i> ’twas a great day! Give me thy hand,
give me thy cheek—lord, I am like to die of very joy!”</p>
<p>He was about to throw himself upon his brother; but Hugh put up his hand
in dissent, then dropped his chin mournfully upon his breast, saying with
emotion—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link25-301" id="link25-301"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-301.jpg (97K)" src="images/25-301.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Ah, God of his mercy give me strength to bear this grievous
disappointment!”</p>
<p>Miles, amazed, could not speak for a moment; then he found his tongue, and
cried out—</p>
<p>“<i>What</i> disappointment? Am I not thy brother?”</p>
<p>Hugh shook his head sadly, and said—</p>
<p>“I pray heaven it may prove so, and that other eyes may find the
resemblances that are hid from mine. Alack, I fear me the letter
spoke but too truly.”</p>
<p>“What letter?”</p>
<p>“One that came from over sea, some six or seven years ago. It
said my brother died in battle.”</p>
<p>“It was a lie! Call thy father—he will know me.”</p>
<p>“One may not call the dead.”</p>
<p>“Dead?” Miles’s voice was subdued, and his lips
trembled. "My father dead!—oh, this is heavy news. Half
my new joy is withered now. Prithee let me see my brother Arthur—he
will know me; he will know me and console me.”</p>
<p>“He, also, is dead.”</p>
<p>“God be merciful to me, a stricken man! Gone,—both gone—the
worthy taken and the worthless spared, in me! Ah! I crave your
mercy!—do not say the Lady Edith—”</p>
<p>“Is dead? No, she lives.”</p>
<p>“Then, God be praised, my joy is whole again! Speed thee,
brother—let her come to me! An’ <i>she</i> say I am not
myself—but she will not; no, no, <i>she</i> will know me, I were a
fool to doubt it. Bring her—bring the old servants; they, too, will
know me.”</p>
<p>“All are gone but five—Peter, Halsey, David, Bernard, and
Margaret.”</p>
<p>So saying, Hugh left the room. Miles stood musing a while, then
began to walk the floor, muttering—</p>
<p>“The five arch-villains have survived the two-and-twenty leal and
honest—’tis an odd thing.”</p>
<p>He continued walking back and forth, muttering to himself; he had
forgotten the King entirely. By-and-by his Majesty said gravely, and
with a touch of genuine compassion, though the words themselves were
capable of being interpreted ironically—</p>
<p>“Mind not thy mischance, good man; there be others in the world
whose identity is denied, and whose claims are derided. Thou hast
company.”</p>
<p>“Ah, my King,” cried Hendon, colouring slightly, “do not
thou condemn me—wait, and thou shalt see. I am no impostor—she
will say it; you shall hear it from the sweetest lips in England. I
an impostor? Why, I know this old hall, these pictures of my
ancestors, and all these things that are about us, as a child knoweth its
own nursery. Here was I born and bred, my lord; I speak the truth; I
would not deceive thee; and should none else believe, I pray thee do not
<i>thou</i> doubt me—I could not bear it.”</p>
<p>“I do not doubt thee,” said the King, with a childlike
simplicity and faith.</p>
<p>“I thank thee out of my heart!” exclaimed Hendon with a
fervency which showed that he was touched. The King added, with the
same gentle simplicity—</p>
<p>“Dost thou doubt <i>me</i>?”</p>
<p>A guilty confusion seized upon Hendon, and he was grateful that the door
opened to admit Hugh, at that moment, and saved him the necessity of
replying.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link25-303" id="link25-303"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-303.jpg (113K)" src="images/25-303.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>A beautiful lady, richly clothed, followed Hugh, and after her came
several liveried servants. The lady walked slowly, with her head
bowed and her eyes fixed upon the floor. The face was unspeakably
sad. Miles Hendon sprang forward, crying out—</p>
<p>“Oh, my Edith, my darling—”</p>
<p>But Hugh waved him back, gravely, and said to the lady—</p>
<p>“Look upon him. Do you know him?”</p>
<p>At the sound of Miles’s voice the woman had started slightly, and
her cheeks had flushed; she was trembling now. She stood still,
during an impressive pause of several moments; then slowly lifted up her
head and looked into Hendon’s eyes with a stony and frightened gaze;
the blood sank out of her face, drop by drop, till nothing remained but
the grey pallor of death; then she said, in a voice as dead as the face,
“I know him not!” and turned, with a moan and a stifled sob,
and tottered out of the room.</p>
<p>Miles Hendon sank into a chair and covered his face with his hands. After
a pause, his brother said to the servants—</p>
<p>“You have observed him. Do you know him?”</p>
<p>They shook their heads; then the master said—</p>
<p>“The servants know you not, sir. I fear there is some mistake.
You have seen that my wife knew you not.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link25-305" id="link25-305"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link25-305.jpg (121K)" src="images/25-305.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“Thy <i>wife</i>!” In an instant Hugh was pinned to the
wall, with an iron grip about his throat. "Oh, thou fox-hearted
slave, I see it all! Thou’st writ the lying letter thyself,
and my stolen bride and goods are its fruit. There—now get
thee gone, lest I shame mine honourable soldiership with the slaying of so
pitiful a mannikin!”</p>
<p>Hugh, red-faced, and almost suffocated, reeled to the nearest chair, and
commanded the servants to seize and bind the murderous stranger. They
hesitated, and one of them said—</p>
<p>“He is armed, Sir Hugh, and we are weaponless.”</p>
<p>“Armed! What of it, and ye so many? Upon him, I say!”</p>
<p>But Miles warned them to be careful what they did, and added—</p>
<p>“Ye know me of old—I have not changed; come on, an’ it
like you.”</p>
<p>This reminder did not hearten the servants much; they still held back.</p>
<p>“Then go, ye paltry cowards, and arm yourselves and guard the doors,
whilst I send one to fetch the watch!” said Hugh. He turned at
the threshold, and said to Miles, “You’ll find it to your
advantage to offend not with useless endeavours at escape.”</p>
<p>“Escape? Spare thyself discomfort, an’ that is all that
troubles thee. For Miles Hendon is master of Hendon Hall and all its
belongings. He will remain—doubt it not.”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c26" id="c26"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link26-307" id="link26-307"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link26-307.jpg (71K)" src="images/26-307.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXVI. Disowned.</p>
<p>The King sat musing a few moments, then looked up and said—</p>
<p>“’Tis strange—most strange. I cannot account for
it.”</p>
<p>“No, it is not strange, my liege. I know him, and this conduct
is but natural. He was a rascal from his birth.”</p>
<p>“Oh, I spake not of <i>him</i>, Sir Miles.”</p>
<p>“Not of him? Then of what? What is it that is strange?”</p>
<p>“That the King is not missed.”</p>
<p>“How? Which? I doubt I do not understand.”</p>
<p>“Indeed? Doth it not strike you as being passing strange that
the land is not filled with couriers and proclamations describing my
person and making search for me? Is it no matter for commotion and
distress that the Head of the State is gone; that I am vanished away and
lost?”</p>
<p>“Most true, my King, I had forgot.” Then Hendon sighed,
and muttered to himself, “Poor ruined mind—still busy with its
pathetic dream.”</p>
<p>“But I have a plan that shall right us both—I will write a
paper, in three tongues—Latin, Greek and English—and thou
shalt haste away with it to London in the morning. Give it to none
but my uncle, the Lord Hertford; when he shall see it, he will know and
say I wrote it. Then he will send for me.”</p>
<p>“Might it not be best, my Prince, that we wait here until I prove
myself and make my rights secure to my domains? I should be so much
the better able then to—”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link26-310" id="link26-310"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link26-310.jpg (134K)" src="images/26-310.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King interrupted him imperiously—</p>
<p>“Peace! What are thy paltry domains, thy trivial interests,
contrasted with matters which concern the weal of a nation and the
integrity of a throne?” Then, he added, in a gentle voice, as
if he were sorry for his severity, “Obey, and have no fear; I will
right thee, I will make thee whole—yes, more than whole. I
shall remember, and requite.”</p>
<p>So saying, he took the pen, and set himself to work. Hendon
contemplated him lovingly a while, then said to himself—</p>
<p>“An’ it were dark, I should think it <i>was</i> a king that
spoke; there’s no denying it, when the humour’s upon on him he
doth thunder and lighten like your true King; now where got he that trick?
See him scribble and scratch away contentedly at his meaningless
pot-hooks, fancying them to be Latin and Greek—and except my wit
shall serve me with a lucky device for diverting him from his purpose, I
shall be forced to pretend to post away to-morrow on this wild errand he
hath invented for me.”</p>
<p>The next moment Sir Miles’s thoughts had gone back to the recent
episode. So absorbed was he in his musings, that when the King presently
handed him the paper which he had been writing, he received it and
pocketed it without being conscious of the act. “How marvellous
strange she acted,” he muttered. "I think she knew me—and
I think she did <i>not</i> know me. These opinions do conflict, I perceive
it plainly; I cannot reconcile them, neither can I, by argument, dismiss
either of the two, or even persuade one to outweigh the other. The
matter standeth simply thus: she <i>must</i> have known my face, my
figure, my voice, for how could it be otherwise? Yet she <i>said</i>she
knew me not, and that is proof perfect, for she cannot lie. But stop—I
think I begin to see. Peradventure he hath influenced her, commanded her,
compelled her to lie. That is the solution. The riddle is
unriddled. She seemed dead with fear—yes, she was under his
compulsion. I will seek her; I will find her; now that he is away,
she will speak her true mind. She will remember the old times when
we were little playfellows together, and this will soften her heart, and
she will no more betray me, but will confess me. There is no
treacherous blood in her—no, she was always honest and true. She
has loved me, in those old days—this is my security; for whom one
has loved, one cannot betray.”</p>
<p>He stepped eagerly toward the door; at that moment it opened, and the Lady
Edith entered. She was very pale, but she walked with a firm step,
and her carriage was full of grace and gentle dignity. Her face was as sad
as before.</p>
<p>Miles sprang forward, with a happy confidence, to meet her, but she
checked him with a hardly perceptible gesture, and he stopped where he
was. She seated herself, and asked him to do likewise. Thus simply
did she take the sense of old comradeship out of him, and transform him
into a stranger and a guest. The surprise of it, the bewildering
unexpectedness of it, made him begin to question, for a moment, if he <i>was</i>
the person he was pretending to be, after all. The Lady Edith said—</p>
<p>“Sir, I have come to warn you. The mad cannot be persuaded out
of their delusions, perchance; but doubtless they may be persuaded to
avoid perils. I think this dream of yours hath the seeming of honest
truth to you, and therefore is not criminal—but do not tarry here
with it; for here it is dangerous.” She looked steadily into
Miles’s face a moment, then added, impressively, “It is the
more dangerous for that you <i>are</i> much like what our lost lad must
have grown to be if he had lived.”</p>
<p>“Heavens, madam, but I <i>am</i> he!”</p>
<p>“I truly think you think it, sir. I question not your honesty
in that; I but warn you, that is all. My husband is master in this
region; his power hath hardly any limit; the people prosper or starve, as
he wills. If you resembled not the man whom you profess to be, my husband
might bid you pleasure yourself with your dream in peace; but trust me, I
know him well; I know what he will do; he will say to all that you are but
a mad impostor, and straightway all will echo him.” She bent
upon Miles that same steady look once more, and added: "If you <i>were</i>
Miles Hendon, and he knew it and all the region knew it—consider
what I am saying, weigh it well—you would stand in the same peril,
your punishment would be no less sure; he would deny you and denounce you,
and none would be bold enough to give you countenance.”</p>
<p>“Most truly I believe it,” said Miles, bitterly. "The
power that can command one life-long friend to betray and disown another,
and be obeyed, may well look to be obeyed in quarters where bread and life
are on the stake and no cobweb ties of loyalty and honour are concerned.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link26-313" id="link26-313"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link26-313.jpg (133K)" src="images/26-313.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>A faint tinge appeared for a moment in the lady’s cheek, and she
dropped her eyes to the floor; but her voice betrayed no emotion when she
proceeded—</p>
<p>“I have warned you—I must still warn you—to go hence.
This man will destroy you, else. He is a tyrant who knows no
pity. I, who am his fettered slave, know this. Poor Miles, and
Arthur, and my dear guardian, Sir Richard, are free of him, and at rest:
better that you were with them than that you bide here in the
clutches of this miscreant. Your pretensions are a menace to his
title and possessions; you have assaulted him in his own house: you
are ruined if you stay. Go—do not hesitate. If you lack money,
take this purse, I beg of you, and bribe the servants to let you pass. Oh,
be warned, poor soul, and escape while you may.”</p>
<p>Miles declined the purse with a gesture, and rose up and stood before her.</p>
<p>“Grant me one thing,” he said. "Let your eyes rest upon
mine, so that I may see if they be steady. There—now answer
me. Am I Miles Hendon?”</p>
<p>“No. I know you not.”</p>
<p>“Swear it!”</p>
<p>The answer was low, but distinct—</p>
<p>“I swear.”</p>
<p>“Oh, this passes belief!”</p>
<p>“Fly! Why will you waste the precious time? Fly, and
save yourself.”</p>
<p>At that moment the officers burst into the room, and a violent struggle
began; but Hendon was soon overpowered and dragged away. The King was
taken also, and both were bound and led to prison.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c27" id="c27"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link27-315" id="link27-315"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-315.jpg (58K)" src="images/27-315.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXVII. In Prison.</p>
<p>The cells were all crowded; so the two friends were chained in a large
room where persons charged with trifling offences were commonly kept. They
had company, for there were some twenty manacled and fettered prisoners
here, of both sexes and of varying ages,—an obscene and noisy gang.
The King chafed bitterly over the stupendous indignity thus put upon
his royalty, but Hendon was moody and taciturn. He was pretty
thoroughly bewildered; he had come home, a jubilant prodigal, expecting to
find everybody wild with joy over his return; and instead had got the cold
shoulder and a jail. The promise and the fulfilment differed so
widely that the effect was stunning; he could not decide whether it was
most tragic or most grotesque. He felt much as a man might who had
danced blithely out to enjoy a rainbow, and got struck by lightning.</p>
<p>But gradually his confused and tormenting thoughts settled down into some
sort of order, and then his mind centred itself upon Edith. He
turned her conduct over, and examined it in all lights, but he could not
make anything satisfactory out of it. Did she know him—or didn’t
she know him? It was a perplexing puzzle, and occupied him a long
time; but he ended, finally, with the conviction that she did know him,
and had repudiated him for interested reasons. He wanted to load her
name with curses now; but this name had so long been sacred to him that he
found he could not bring his tongue to profane it.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-318" id="link27-318"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-318.jpg (125K)" src="images/27-318.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Wrapped in prison blankets of a soiled and tattered condition, Hendon and
the King passed a troubled night. For a bribe the jailer had
furnished liquor to some of the prisoners; singing of ribald songs,
fighting, shouting, and carousing was the natural consequence. At
last, a while after midnight, a man attacked a woman and nearly killed her
by beating her over the head with his manacles before the jailer could
come to the rescue. The jailer restored peace by giving the man a
sound clubbing about the head and shoulders—then the carousing
ceased; and after that, all had an opportunity to sleep who did not mind
the annoyance of the moanings and groanings of the two wounded people.</p>
<p>During the ensuing week, the days and nights were of a monotonous sameness
as to events; men whose faces Hendon remembered more or less distinctly,
came, by day, to gaze at the ‘impostor’ and repudiate and
insult him; and by night the carousing and brawling went on with
symmetrical regularity. However, there was a change of incident at
last. The jailer brought in an old man, and said to him—</p>
<p>“The villain is in this room—cast thy old eyes about and see
if thou canst say which is he.”</p>
<p>Hendon glanced up, and experienced a pleasant sensation for the first time
since he had been in the jail. He said to himself, “This is
Blake Andrews, a servant all his life in my father’s family—a
good honest soul, with a right heart in his breast. That is, formerly.
But none are true now; all are liars. This man will know me—and
will deny me, too, like the rest.”</p>
<p>The old man gazed around the room, glanced at each face in turn, and
finally said—</p>
<p>“I see none here but paltry knaves, scum o’ the streets.
Which is he?”</p>
<p>The jailer laughed.</p>
<p>“Here,” he said; “scan this big animal, and grant me an
opinion.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-320" id="link27-320"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-320.jpg (112K)" src="images/27-320.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The old man approached, and looked Hendon over, long and earnestly, then
shook his head and said—</p>
<p>“Marry, <i>this</i> is no Hendon—nor ever was!”</p>
<p>“Right! Thy old eyes are sound yet. An’ I were Sir
Hugh, I would take the shabby carle and—”</p>
<p>The jailer finished by lifting himself a-tip-toe with an imaginary halter,
at the same time making a gurgling noise in his throat suggestive of
suffocation. The old man said, vindictively—</p>
<p>“Let him bless God an’ he fare no worse. An’ <i>I</i>
had the handling o’ the villain he should roast, or I am no true
man!”</p>
<p>The jailer laughed a pleasant hyena laugh, and said—</p>
<p>“Give him a piece of thy mind, old man—they all do it. Thou’lt
find it good diversion.”</p>
<p>Then he sauntered toward his ante-room and disappeared. The old man
dropped upon his knees and whispered—</p>
<p>“God be thanked, thou’rt come again, my master! I
believed thou wert dead these seven years, and lo, here thou art alive!
I knew thee the moment I saw thee; and main hard work it was to keep
a stony countenance and seem to see none here but tuppenny knaves and
rubbish o’ the streets. I am old and poor, Sir Miles; but say the
word and I will go forth and proclaim the truth though I be strangled for
it.”</p>
<p>“No,” said Hendon; “thou shalt not. It would ruin
thee, and yet help but little in my cause. But I thank thee, for
thou hast given me back somewhat of my lost faith in my kind.”</p>
<p>The old servant became very valuable to Hendon and the King; for he
dropped in several times a day to ‘abuse’ the former, and
always smuggled in a few delicacies to help out the prison bill of fare;
he also furnished the current news. Hendon reserved the dainties for
the King; without them his Majesty might not have survived, for he was not
able to eat the coarse and wretched food provided by the jailer. Andrews
was obliged to confine himself to brief visits, in order to avoid
suspicion; but he managed to impart a fair degree of information each time—information
delivered in a low voice, for Hendon’s benefit, and interlarded with
insulting epithets delivered in a louder voice for the benefit of other
hearers.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-321" id="link27-321"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-321.jpg (102K)" src="images/27-321.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>So, little by little, the story of the family came out. Arthur had
been dead six years. This loss, with the absence of news from
Hendon, impaired the father’s health; he believed he was going to
die, and he wished to see Hugh and Edith settled in life before he passed
away; but Edith begged hard for delay, hoping for Miles’s return;
then the letter came which brought the news of Miles’s death; the
shock prostrated Sir Richard; he believed his end was very near, and he
and Hugh insisted upon the marriage; Edith begged for and obtained a month’s
respite, then another, and finally a third; the marriage then took place
by the death-bed of Sir Richard. It had not proved a happy one.
It was whispered about the country that shortly after the nuptials
the bride found among her husband’s papers several rough and
incomplete drafts of the fatal letter, and had accused him of
precipitating the marriage—and Sir Richard’s death, too—by
a wicked forgery. Tales of cruelty to the Lady Edith and the servants were
to be heard on all hands; and since the father’s death Sir Hugh had
thrown off all soft disguises and become a pitiless master toward all who
in any way depended upon him and his domains for bread.</p>
<p>There was a bit of Andrew’s gossip which the King listened to with a
lively interest—</p>
<p>“There is rumour that the King is mad. But in charity forbear
to say <i>I</i> mentioned it, for ’tis death to speak of it, they
say.”</p>
<p>His Majesty glared at the old man and said—</p>
<p>“The King is <i>not</i> mad, good man—and thou’lt find
it to thy advantage to busy thyself with matters that nearer concern thee
than this seditious prattle.”</p>
<p>“What doth the lad mean?” said Andrews, surprised at this
brisk assault from such an unexpected quarter. Hendon gave him a
sign, and he did not pursue his question, but went on with his budget—</p>
<p>“The late King is to be buried at Windsor in a day or two—the
16th of the month—and the new King will be crowned at Westminster
the 20th.”</p>
<p>“Methinks they must needs find him first,” muttered his
Majesty; then added, confidently, “but they will look to that—and
so also shall I.”</p>
<p>“In the name of—”</p>
<p>But the old man got no further—a warning sign from Hendon checked
his remark. He resumed the thread of his gossip—</p>
<p>“Sir Hugh goeth to the coronation—and with grand hopes. He
confidently looketh to come back a peer, for he is high in favour with the
Lord Protector.”</p>
<p>“What Lord Protector?” asked his Majesty.</p>
<p>“His Grace the Duke of Somerset.”</p>
<p>“What Duke of Somerset?”</p>
<p>“Marry, there is but one—Seymour, Earl of Hertford.”</p>
<p>The King asked sharply—</p>
<p>“Since when is <i>he</i> a duke, and Lord Protector?”</p>
<p>“Since the last day of January.”</p>
<p>“And prithee who made him so?”</p>
<p>“Himself and the Great Council—with help of the King.”</p>
<p>His Majesty started violently. "The <i>King</i>!” he cried.
“<i>What</i> king, good sir?”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-323" id="link27-323"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-323.jpg (114K)" src="images/27-323.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“What king, indeed! (God-a-mercy, what aileth the boy?) Sith
we have but one, ’tis not difficult to answer—his most sacred
Majesty King Edward the Sixth—whom God preserve! Yea, and a
dear and gracious little urchin is he, too; and whether he be mad or no—and
they say he mendeth daily—his praises are on all men’s lips;
and all bless him, likewise, and offer prayers that he may be spared to
reign long in England; for he began humanely with saving the old Duke of
Norfolk’s life, and now is he bent on destroying the cruellest of
the laws that harry and oppress the people.”</p>
<p>This news struck his Majesty dumb with amazement, and plunged him into so
deep and dismal a reverie that he heard no more of the old man’s
gossip. He wondered if the ‘little urchin’ was the beggar-boy
whom he left dressed in his own garments in the palace. It did not
seem possible that this could be, for surely his manners and speech would
betray him if he pretended to be the Prince of Wales—then he would
be driven out, and search made for the true prince. Could it be that
the Court had set up some sprig of the nobility in his place? No,
for his uncle would not allow that—he was all-powerful and could and
would crush such a movement, of course. The boy’s musings
profited him nothing; the more he tried to unriddle the mystery the more
perplexed he became, the more his head ached, and the worse he slept.
His impatience to get to London grew hourly, and his captivity
became almost unendurable.</p>
<p>Hendon’s arts all failed with the King—he could not be
comforted; but a couple of women who were chained near him succeeded
better. Under their gentle ministrations he found peace and learned a
degree of patience. He was very grateful, and came to love them
dearly and to delight in the sweet and soothing influence of their
presence. He asked them why they were in prison, and when they said
they were Baptists, he smiled, and inquired—</p>
<p>“Is that a crime to be shut up for in a prison? Now I grieve,
for I shall lose ye—they will not keep ye long for such a little
thing.”</p>
<p>They did not answer; and something in their faces made him uneasy. He
said, eagerly—</p>
<p>“You do not speak; be good to me, and tell me—there will be no
other punishment? Prithee tell me there is no fear of that.”</p>
<p>They tried to change the topic, but his fears were aroused, and he pursued
it—</p>
<p>“Will they scourge thee? No, no, they would not be so cruel!
Say they would not. Come, they <i>will</i> not, will they?”</p>
<p>The women betrayed confusion and distress, but there was no avoiding an
answer, so one of them said, in a voice choked with emotion—</p>
<p>“Oh, thou’lt break our hearts, thou gentle spirit!—God
will help us to bear our—”</p>
<p>“It is a confession!” the King broke in. "Then they <i>will</i>
scourge thee, the stony-hearted wretches! But oh, thou must not
weep, I cannot bear it. Keep up thy courage—I shall come to my
own in time to save thee from this bitter thing, and I will do it!”</p>
<p>When the King awoke in the morning, the women were gone.</p>
<p>“They are saved!” he said, joyfully; then added, despondently,
“but woe is me!—for they were my comforters.”</p>
<p>Each of them had left a shred of ribbon pinned to his clothing, in token
of remembrance. He said he would keep these things always; and that
soon he would seek out these dear good friends of his and take them under
his protection.</p>
<p>Just then the jailer came in with some subordinates, and commanded that
the prisoners be conducted to the jail-yard. The King was overjoyed—it
would be a blessed thing to see the blue sky and breathe the fresh air
once more. He fretted and chafed at the slowness of the officers,
but his turn came at last, and he was released from his staple and ordered
to follow the other prisoners with Hendon.</p>
<p>The court or quadrangle was stone-paved, and open to the sky. The
prisoners entered it through a massive archway of masonry, and were placed
in file, standing, with their backs against the wall. A rope was stretched
in front of them, and they were also guarded by their officers. It was a
chill and lowering morning, and a light snow which had fallen during the
night whitened the great empty space and added to the general dismalness
of its aspect. Now and then a wintry wind shivered through the place and
sent the snow eddying hither and thither.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-326" id="link27-326"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-326.jpg (53K)" src="images/27-326.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>In the centre of the court stood two women, chained to posts. A
glance showed the King that these were his good friends. He
shuddered, and said to himself, “Alack, they are not gone free, as I
had thought. To think that such as these should know the lash!—in
England! Ay, there’s the shame of it—not in
Heathennesse, Christian England! They will be scourged; and I, whom
they have comforted and kindly entreated, must look on and see the great
wrong done; it is strange, so strange, that I, the very source of power in
this broad realm, am helpless to protect them. But let these miscreants
look well to themselves, for there is a day coming when I will require of
them a heavy reckoning for this work. For every blow they strike
now, they shall feel a hundred then.”</p>
<p>A great gate swung open, and a crowd of citizens poured in. They
flocked around the two women, and hid them from the King’s view. A
clergyman entered and passed through the crowd, and he also was hidden.
The King now heard talking, back and forth, as if questions were
being asked and answered, but he could not make out what was said. Next
there was a deal of bustle and preparation, and much passing and repassing
of officials through that part of the crowd that stood on the further side
of the women; and whilst this proceeded a deep hush gradually fell upon
the people.</p>
<p>Now, by command, the masses parted and fell aside, and the King saw a
spectacle that froze the marrow in his bones. Faggots had been piled
about the two women, and a kneeling man was lighting them!</p>
<p>The women bowed their heads, and covered their faces with their hands; the
yellow flames began to climb upward among the snapping and crackling
faggots, and wreaths of blue smoke to stream away on the wind; the
clergyman lifted his hands and began a prayer—just then two young
girls came flying through the great gate, uttering piercing screams, and
threw themselves upon the women at the stake. Instantly they were
torn away by the officers, and one of them was kept in a tight grip, but
the other broke loose, saying she would die with her mother; and before
she could be stopped she had flung her arms about her mother’s neck
again. She was torn away once more, and with her gown on fire.
Two or three men held her, and the burning portion of her gown was
snatched off and thrown flaming aside, she struggling all the while to
free herself, and saying she would be alone in the world, now; and begging
to be allowed to die with her mother. Both the girls screamed
continually, and fought for freedom; but suddenly this tumult was drowned
under a volley of heart-piercing shrieks of mortal agony—the King
glanced from the frantic girls to the stake, then turned away and leaned
his ashen face against the wall, and looked no more. He said,
“That which I have seen, in that one little moment, will never go
out from my memory, but will abide there; and I shall see it all the days,
and dream of it all the nights, till I die. Would God I had been
blind!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-328" id="link27-328"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-328.jpg (118K)" src="images/27-328.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hendon was watching the King. He said to himself, with satisfaction,
“His disorder mendeth; he hath changed, and groweth gentler. If
he had followed his wont, he would have stormed at these varlets, and said
he was King, and commanded that the women be turned loose unscathed.
Soon his delusion will pass away and be forgotten, and his poor mind
will be whole again. God speed the day!”</p>
<p>That same day several prisoners were brought in to remain over night, who
were being conveyed, under guard, to various places in the kingdom, to
undergo punishment for crimes committed. The King conversed with
these—he had made it a point, from the beginning, to instruct
himself for the kingly office by questioning prisoners whenever the
opportunity offered—and the tale of their woes wrung his heart.
One of them was a poor half-witted woman who had stolen a yard or
two of cloth from a weaver—she was to be hanged for it. Another
was a man who had been accused of stealing a horse; he said the proof had
failed, and he had imagined that he was safe from the halter; but no—he
was hardly free before he was arraigned for killing a deer in the King’s
park; this was proved against him, and now he was on his way to the
gallows. There was a tradesman’s apprentice whose case
particularly distressed the King; this youth said he found a hawk, one
evening, that had escaped from its owner, and he took it home with him,
imagining himself entitled to it; but the court convicted him of stealing
it, and sentenced him to death.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link27-329" id="link27-329"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link27-329.jpg (60K)" src="images/27-329.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The King was furious over these inhumanities, and wanted Hendon to break
jail and fly with him to Westminster, so that he could mount his throne
and hold out his sceptre in mercy over these unfortunate people and save
their lives. "Poor child,” sighed Hendon, “these woeful
tales have brought his malady upon him again; alack, but for this evil
hap, he would have been well in a little time.”</p>
<p>Among these prisoners was an old lawyer—a man with a strong face and
a dauntless mien. Three years past, he had written a pamphlet
against the Lord Chancellor, accusing him of injustice, and had been
punished for it by the loss of his ears in the pillory, and degradation
from the bar, and in addition had been fined 3,000 pounds and sentenced to
imprisonment for life. Lately he had repeated his offence; and in
consequence was now under sentence to lose <i>what remained of his ears</i>,
pay a fine of 5,000 pounds, be branded on both cheeks, and remain in
prison for life.</p>
<p>“These be honourable scars,” he said, and turned back his grey
hair and showed the mutilated stubs of what had once been his ears.</p>
<p>The King’s eye burned with passion. He said—</p>
<p>“None believe in me—neither wilt thou. But no matter—within
the compass of a month thou shalt be free; and more, the laws that have
dishonoured thee, and shamed the English name, shall be swept from the
statute books. The world is made wrong; kings should go to school to
their own laws, at times, and so learn mercy.” {1}</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c28" id="c28"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link28-331" id="link28-331"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link28-331.jpg (48K)" src="images/28-331.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXVIII. The sacrifice.</p>
<p>Meantime Miles was growing sufficiently tired of confinement and inaction.
But now his trial came on, to his great gratification, and he
thought he could welcome any sentence provided a further imprisonment
should not be a part of it. But he was mistaken about that. He
was in a fine fury when he found himself described as a ‘sturdy
vagabond’ and sentenced to sit two hours in the stocks for bearing
that character and for assaulting the master of Hendon Hall. His
pretensions as to brothership with his prosecutor, and rightful heirship
to the Hendon honours and estates, were left contemptuously unnoticed, as
being not even worth examination.</p>
<p>He raged and threatened on his way to punishment, but it did no good; he
was snatched roughly along by the officers, and got an occasional cuff,
besides, for his irreverent conduct.</p>
<p>The King could not pierce through the rabble that swarmed behind; so he
was obliged to follow in the rear, remote from his good friend and
servant. The King had been nearly condemned to the stocks himself
for being in such bad company, but had been let off with a lecture and a
warning, in consideration of his youth. When the crowd at last
halted, he flitted feverishly from point to point around its outer rim,
hunting a place to get through; and at last, after a deal of difficulty
and delay, succeeded. There sat his poor henchman in the degrading
stocks, the sport and butt of a dirty mob—he, the body servant of
the King of England! Edward had heard the sentence pronounced, but
he had not realised the half that it meant. His anger began to rise
as the sense of this new indignity which had been put upon him sank home;
it jumped to summer heat, the next moment, when he saw an egg sail through
the air and crush itself against Hendon’s cheek, and heard the crowd
roar its enjoyment of the episode. He sprang across the open circle
and confronted the officer in charge, crying—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link28-334" id="link28-334"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link28-334.jpg (119K)" src="images/28-334.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“For shame! This is my servant—set him free! I am
the—”</p>
<p>“Oh, peace!” exclaimed Hendon, in a panic, “thou’lt
destroy thyself. Mind him not, officer, he is mad.”</p>
<p>“Give thyself no trouble as to the matter of minding him, good man,
I have small mind to mind him; but as to teaching him somewhat, to that I
am well inclined.” He turned to a subordinate and said,
“Give the little fool a taste or two of the lash, to mend his
manners.”</p>
<p>“Half a dozen will better serve his turn,” suggested Sir Hugh,
who had ridden up, a moment before, to take a passing glance at the
proceedings.</p>
<p>The King was seized. He did not even struggle, so paralysed was he
with the mere thought of the monstrous outrage that was proposed to be
inflicted upon his sacred person. History was already defiled with
the record of the scourging of an English king with whips—it was an
intolerable reflection that he must furnish a duplicate of that shameful
page. He was in the toils, there was no help for him; he must either
take this punishment or beg for its remission. Hard conditions; he
would take the stripes—a king might do that, but a king could not
beg.</p>
<p>But meantime, Miles Hendon was resolving the difficulty. "Let the
child go,” said he; “ye heartless dogs, do ye not see how
young and frail he is? Let him go—I will take his lashes.”</p>
<p>“Marry, a good thought—and thanks for it,” said Sir
Hugh, his face lighting with a sardonic satisfaction. "Let the
little beggar go, and give this fellow a dozen in his place—an
honest dozen, well laid on.” The King was in the act of entering a
fierce protest, but Sir Hugh silenced him with the potent remark, “Yes,
speak up, do, and free thy mind—only, mark ye, that for each word
you utter he shall get six strokes the more.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link28-336" id="link28-336"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link28-336.jpg (85K)" src="images/28-336.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hendon was removed from the stocks, and his back laid bare; and whilst the
lash was applied the poor little King turned away his face and allowed
unroyal tears to channel his cheeks unchecked. “Ah, brave good
heart,” he said to himself, “this loyal deed shall never
perish out of my memory. I will not forget it—and neither
shall <i>they</i>!” he added, with passion. Whilst he mused,
his appreciation of Hendon’s magnanimous conduct grew to greater and
still greater dimensions in his mind, and so also did his gratefulness for
it. Presently he said to himself, “Who saves his prince from
wounds and possible death—and this he did for me—performs high
service; but it is little—it is nothing—oh, less than nothing!—when
’tis weighed against the act of him who saves his prince from <i>shame</i>!”</p>
<p>Hendon made no outcry under the scourge, but bore the heavy blows with
soldierly fortitude. This, together with his redeeming the boy by
taking his stripes for him, compelled the respect of even that forlorn and
degraded mob that was gathered there; and its gibes and hootings died
away, and no sound remained but the sound of the falling blows. The
stillness that pervaded the place, when Hendon found himself once more in
the stocks, was in strong contrast with the insulting clamour which had
prevailed there so little a while before. The King came softly to
Hendon’s side, and whispered in his ear—</p>
<p>“Kings cannot ennoble thee, thou good, great soul, for One who is
higher than kings hath done that for thee; but a king can confirm thy
nobility to men.” He picked up the scourge from the ground,
touched Hendon’s bleeding shoulders lightly with it, and whispered,
“Edward of England dubs thee Earl!”</p>
<p>Hendon was touched. The water welled to his eyes, yet at the same
time the grisly humour of the situation and circumstances so undermined
his gravity that it was all he could do to keep some sign of his inward
mirth from showing outside. To be suddenly hoisted, naked and gory,
from the common stocks to the Alpine altitude and splendour of an Earldom,
seemed to him the last possibility in the line of the grotesque. He
said to himself, “Now am I finely tinselled, indeed! The
spectre-knight of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows is become a
spectre-earl—a dizzy flight for a callow wing! An’ this
go on, I shall presently be hung like a very maypole with fantastic gauds
and make-believe honours. But I shall value them, all valueless as
they are, for the love that doth bestow them. Better these poor mock
dignities of mine, that come unasked, from a clean hand and a right
spirit, than real ones bought by servility from grudging and interested
power.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link28-337" id="link28-337"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link28-337.jpg (124K)" src="images/28-337.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The dreaded Sir Hugh wheeled his horse about, and as he spurred away, the
living wall divided silently to let him pass, and as silently closed
together again. And so remained; nobody went so far as to venture a
remark in favour of the prisoner, or in compliment to him; but no matter—the
absence of abuse was a sufficient homage in itself. A late comer who
was not posted as to the present circumstances, and who delivered a sneer
at the ‘impostor,’ and was in the act of following it with a
dead cat, was promptly knocked down and kicked out, without any words, and
then the deep quiet resumed sway once more.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c29" id="c29"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link29-339" id="link29-339"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link29-339.jpg (53K)" src="images/29-339.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXIX. To London.</p>
<p>When Hendon’s term of service in the stocks was finished, he was
released and ordered to quit the region and come back no more. His sword
was restored to him, and also his mule and his donkey. He mounted and rode
off, followed by the King, the crowd opening with quiet respectfulness to
let them pass, and then dispersing when they were gone.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link29-342" id="link29-342"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link29-342.jpg (142K)" src="images/29-342.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Hendon was soon absorbed in thought. There were questions of high
import to be answered. What should he do? Whither should he
go? Powerful help must be found somewhere, or he must relinquish his
inheritance and remain under the imputation of being an impostor besides.
Where could he hope to find this powerful help? Where, indeed!
It was a knotty question. By-and-by a thought occurred to him which
pointed to a possibility—the slenderest of slender possibilities,
certainly, but still worth considering, for lack of any other that
promised anything at all. He remembered what old Andrews had said
about the young King’s goodness and his generous championship of the
wronged and unfortunate. Why not go and try to get speech of him and
beg for justice? Ah, yes, but could so fantastic a pauper get
admission to the august presence of a monarch? Never mind—let that
matter take care of itself; it was a bridge that would not need to be
crossed till he should come to it. He was an old campaigner, and
used to inventing shifts and expedients: no doubt he would be able
to find a way. Yes, he would strike for the capital. Maybe his
father’s old friend Sir Humphrey Marlow would help him—‘good
old Sir Humphrey, Head Lieutenant of the late King’s kitchen, or
stables, or something’—Miles could not remember just what or
which. Now that he had something to turn his energies to, a
distinctly defined object to accomplish, the fog of humiliation and
depression which had settled down upon his spirits lifted and blew away,
and he raised his head and looked about him. He was surprised to see
how far he had come; the village was away behind him. The King was
jogging along in his wake, with his head bowed; for he, too, was deep in
plans and thinkings. A sorrowful misgiving clouded Hendon’s
new-born cheerfulness: would the boy be willing to go again to a
city where, during all his brief life, he had never known anything but
ill-usage and pinching want? But the question must be asked; it
could not be avoided; so Hendon reined up, and called out—</p>
<p>“I had forgotten to inquire whither we are bound. Thy
commands, my liege!”</p>
<p>“To London!”</p>
<p>Hendon moved on again, mightily contented with the answer—but
astounded at it too.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link29-343" id="link29-343"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link29-343.jpg (131K)" src="images/29-343.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The whole journey was made without an adventure of importance. But it
ended with one. About ten o’clock on the night of the 19th of
February they stepped upon London Bridge, in the midst of a writhing,
struggling jam of howling and hurrahing people, whose beer-jolly faces
stood out strongly in the glare from manifold torches—and at that
instant the decaying head of some former duke or other grandee tumbled
down between them, striking Hendon on the elbow and then bounding off
among the hurrying confusion of feet. So evanescent and unstable are men’s
works in this world!—the late good King is but three weeks dead and
three days in his grave, and already the adornments which he took such
pains to select from prominent people for his noble bridge are falling.
A citizen stumbled over that head, and drove his own head into the
back of somebody in front of him, who turned and knocked down the first
person that came handy, and was promptly laid out himself by that person’s
friend. It was the right ripe time for a free fight, for the
festivities of the morrow—Coronation Day—were already
beginning; everybody was full of strong drink and patriotism; within five
minutes the free fight was occupying a good deal of ground; within ten or
twelve it covered an acre of so, and was become a riot. By this time
Hendon and the King were hopelessly separated from each other and lost in
the rush and turmoil of the roaring masses of humanity. And so we
leave them.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c30" id="c30"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link30-345" id="link30-345"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link30-345.jpg (47K)" src="images/30-345.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXX. Tom’s progress.</p>
<p>Whilst the true King wandered about the land poorly clad, poorly fed,
cuffed and derided by tramps one while, herding with thieves and murderers
in a jail another, and called idiot and impostor by all impartially, the
mock King Tom Canty enjoyed quite a different experience.</p>
<p>When we saw him last, royalty was just beginning to have a bright side for
him. This bright side went on brightening more and more every day:
in a very little while it was become almost all sunshine and
delightfulness. He lost his fears; his misgivings faded out and
died; his embarrassments departed, and gave place to an easy and confident
bearing. He worked the whipping-boy mine to ever-increasing profit.</p>
<p>He ordered my Lady Elizabeth and my Lady Jane Grey into his presence when
he wanted to play or talk, and dismissed them when he was done with them,
with the air of one familiarly accustomed to such performances. It
no longer confused him to have these lofty personages kiss his hand at
parting.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link30-348" id="link30-348"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link30-348.jpg (92K)" src="images/30-348.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>He came to enjoy being conducted to bed in state at night, and dressed
with intricate and solemn ceremony in the morning. It came to be a
proud pleasure to march to dinner attended by a glittering procession of
officers of state and gentlemen-at-arms; insomuch, indeed, that he doubled
his guard of gentlemen-at-arms, and made them a hundred. He liked to
hear the bugles sounding down the long corridors, and the distant voices
responding, “Way for the King!”</p>
<p>He even learned to enjoy sitting in throned state in council, and seeming
to be something more than the Lord Protector’s mouthpiece. He liked
to receive great ambassadors and their gorgeous trains, and listen to the
affectionate messages they brought from illustrious monarchs who called
him brother. O happy Tom Canty, late of Offal Court!</p>
<p>He enjoyed his splendid clothes, and ordered more: he found his four
hundred servants too few for his proper grandeur, and trebled them. The
adulation of salaaming courtiers came to be sweet music to his ears.
He remained kind and gentle, and a sturdy and determined champion of
all that were oppressed, and he made tireless war upon unjust laws: yet
upon occasion, being offended, he could turn upon an earl, or even a duke,
and give him a look that would make him tremble. Once, when his
royal ‘sister,’ the grimly holy Lady Mary, set herself to
reason with him against the wisdom of his course in pardoning so many
people who would otherwise be jailed, or hanged, or burned, and reminded
him that their august late father’s prisons had sometimes contained
as high as sixty thousand convicts at one time, and that during his
admirable reign he had delivered seventy-two thousand thieves and robbers
over to death by the executioner, {9} the boy was filled with generous
indignation, and commanded her to go to her closet, and beseech God to
take away the stone that was in her breast, and give her a human heart.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link30-349" id="link30-349"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link30-349.jpg (94K)" src="images/30-349.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Did Tom Canty never feel troubled about the poor little rightful prince
who had treated him so kindly, and flown out with such hot zeal to avenge
him upon the insolent sentinel at the palace-gate? Yes; his first royal
days and nights were pretty well sprinkled with painful thoughts about the
lost prince, and with sincere longings for his return, and happy
restoration to his native rights and splendours. But as time wore
on, and the prince did not come, Tom’s mind became more and more
occupied with his new and enchanting experiences, and by little and little
the vanished monarch faded almost out of his thoughts; and finally, when
he did intrude upon them at intervals, he was become an unwelcome spectre,
for he made Tom feel guilty and ashamed.</p>
<p>Tom’s poor mother and sisters travelled the same road out of his
mind. At first he pined for them, sorrowed for them, longed to see them,
but later, the thought of their coming some day in their rags and dirt,
and betraying him with their kisses, and pulling him down from his lofty
place, and dragging him back to penury and degradation and the slums, made
him shudder. At last they ceased to trouble his thoughts almost
wholly. And he was content, even glad: for, whenever their
mournful and accusing faces did rise before him now, they made him feel
more despicable than the worms that crawl.</p>
<p>At midnight of the 19th of February, Tom Canty was sinking to sleep in his
rich bed in the palace, guarded by his loyal vassals, and surrounded by
the pomps of royalty, a happy boy; for tomorrow was the day appointed for
his solemn crowning as King of England. At that same hour, Edward, the
true king, hungry and thirsty, soiled and draggled, worn with travel, and
clothed in rags and shreds—his share of the results of the riot—was
wedged in among a crowd of people who were watching with deep interest
certain hurrying gangs of workmen who streamed in and out of Westminster
Abbey, busy as ants: they were making the last preparation for the
royal coronation.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c31" id="c31"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link31-351" id="link31-351"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-351.jpg (68K)" src="images/31-351.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><SPAN name="link31-353" id="link31-353"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-353.jpg (134K)" src="images/31-353.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXXI. The Recognition procession.</p>
<p>When Tom Canty awoke the next morning, the air was heavy with a thunderous
murmur: all the distances were charged with it. It was music
to him; for it meant that the English world was out in its strength to
give loyal welcome to the great day.</p>
<p>Presently Tom found himself once more the chief figure in a wonderful
floating pageant on the Thames; for by ancient custom the ‘recognition
procession’ through London must start from the Tower, and he was
bound thither.</p>
<p>When he arrived there, the sides of the venerable fortress seemed suddenly
rent in a thousand places, and from every rent leaped a red tongue of
flame and a white gush of smoke; a deafening explosion followed, which
drowned the shoutings of the multitude, and made the ground tremble; the
flame-jets, the smoke, and the explosions, were repeated over and over
again with marvellous celerity, so that in a few moments the old Tower
disappeared in the vast fog of its own smoke, all but the very top of the
tall pile called the White Tower; this, with its banners, stood out above
the dense bank of vapour as a mountain-peak projects above a cloud-rack.</p>
<p>Tom Canty, splendidly arrayed, mounted a prancing war-steed, whose rich
trappings almost reached to the ground; his ‘uncle,’ the Lord
Protector Somerset, similarly mounted, took place in his rear; the King’s
Guard formed in single ranks on either side, clad in burnished armour;
after the Protector followed a seemingly interminable procession of
resplendent nobles attended by their vassals; after these came the lord
mayor and the aldermanic body, in crimson velvet robes, and with their
gold chains across their breasts; and after these the officers and members
of all the guilds of London, in rich raiment, and bearing the showy
banners of the several corporations. Also in the procession, as a
special guard of honour through the city, was the Ancient and Honourable
Artillery Company—an organisation already three hundred years old at
that time, and the only military body in England possessing the privilege
(which it still possesses in our day) of holding itself independent of the
commands of Parliament. It was a brilliant spectacle, and was hailed
with acclamations all along the line, as it took its stately way through
the packed multitudes of citizens. The chronicler says, ‘The King,
as he entered the city, was received by the people with prayers,
welcomings, cries, and tender words, and all signs which argue an earnest
love of subjects toward their sovereign; and the King, by holding up his
glad countenance to such as stood afar off, and most tender language to
those that stood nigh his Grace, showed himself no less thankful to
receive the people’s goodwill than they to offer it. To all
that wished him well, he gave thanks. To such as bade “God
save his Grace,” he said in return, “God save you all!”
and added that “he thanked them with all his heart.”
Wonderfully transported were the people with the loving answers and
gestures of their King.’</p>
<p><SPAN name="link31-355" id="link31-355"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-355.jpg (40K)" src="images/31-355.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>In Fenchurch Street a ‘fair child, in costly apparel,’ stood
on a stage to welcome his Majesty to the city. The last verse of his
greeting was in these words—</p>
<blockquote>
<p>‘Welcome, O King! as much as hearts can think;<br/> Welcome,
again, as much as tongue can tell,—<br/> Welcome to joyous
tongues, and hearts that will not shrink: <br/> God thee preserve, we
pray, and wish thee ever well.’</p>
</blockquote>
<p>The people burst forth in a glad shout, repeating with one voice what the
child had said. Tom Canty gazed abroad over the surging sea of eager
faces, and his heart swelled with exultation; and he felt that the one
thing worth living for in this world was to be a king, and a nation’s
idol. Presently he caught sight, at a distance, of a couple of his
ragged Offal Court comrades—one of them the lord high admiral in his
late mimic court, the other the first lord of the bedchamber in the same
pretentious fiction; and his pride swelled higher than ever. Oh, if
they could only recognise him now! What unspeakable glory it would
be, if they could recognise him, and realise that the derided mock king of
the slums and back alleys was become a real King, with illustrious dukes
and princes for his humble menials, and the English world at his feet!
But he had to deny himself, and choke down his desire, for such a
recognition might cost more than it would come to: so he turned away
his head, and left the two soiled lads to go on with their shoutings and
glad adulations, unsuspicious of whom it was they were lavishing them
upon.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link31-356" id="link31-356"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-356.jpg (195K)" src="images/31-356.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Every now and then rose the cry, “A largess! a largess!” and
Tom responded by scattering a handful of bright new coins abroad for the
multitude to scramble for.</p>
<p>The chronicler says, ‘At the upper end of Gracechurch Street, before
the sign of the Eagle, the city had erected a gorgeous arch, beneath which
was a stage, which stretched from one side of the street to the other.
This was an historical pageant, representing the King’s immediate
progenitors. There sat Elizabeth of York in the midst of an immense
white rose, whose petals formed elaborate furbelows around her; by her
side was Henry VII., issuing out of a vast red rose, disposed in the same
manner: the hands of the royal pair were locked together, and the
wedding-ring ostentatiously displayed. From the red and white roses
proceeded a stem, which reached up to a second stage, occupied by Henry
VIII., issuing from a red and white rose, with the effigy of the new King’s
mother, Jane Seymour, represented by his side. One branch sprang
from this pair, which mounted to a third stage, where sat the effigy of
Edward VI. himself, enthroned in royal majesty; and the whole pageant was
framed with wreaths of roses, red and white.’</p>
<p>This quaint and gaudy spectacle so wrought upon the rejoicing people, that
their acclamations utterly smothered the small voice of the child whose
business it was to explain the thing in eulogistic rhymes. But Tom
Canty was not sorry; for this loyal uproar was sweeter music to him than
any poetry, no matter what its quality might be. Whithersoever Tom
turned his happy young face, the people recognised the exactness of his
effigy’s likeness to himself, the flesh and blood counterpart; and
new whirlwinds of applause burst forth.</p>
<p>The great pageant moved on, and still on, under one triumphal arch after
another, and past a bewildering succession of spectacular and symbolical
tableaux, each of which typified and exalted some virtue, or talent, or
merit, of the little King’s. ’Throughout the whole of
Cheapside, from every penthouse and window, hung banners and streamers;
and the richest carpets, stuffs, and cloth-of-gold tapestried the streets—specimens
of the great wealth of the stores within; and the splendour of this
thoroughfare was equalled in the other streets, and in some even
surpassed.’</p>
<p>“And all these wonders and these marvels are to welcome me—me!”
murmured Tom Canty.</p>
<p>The mock King’s cheeks were flushed with excitement, his eyes were
flashing, his senses swam in a delirium of pleasure. At this point,
just as he was raising his hand to fling another rich largess, he caught
sight of a pale, astounded face, which was strained forward out of the
second rank of the crowd, its intense eyes riveted upon him. A
sickening consternation struck through him; he recognised his mother! and
up flew his hand, palm outward, before his eyes—that old involuntary
gesture, born of a forgotten episode, and perpetuated by habit. In
an instant more she had torn her way out of the press, and past the
guards, and was at his side. She embraced his leg, she covered it
with kisses, she cried, “O my child, my darling!” lifting
toward him a face that was transfigured with joy and love. The same
instant an officer of the King’s Guard snatched her away with a
curse, and sent her reeling back whence she came with a vigorous impulse
from his strong arm. The words “I do not know you, woman!”
were falling from Tom Canty’s lips when this piteous thing occurred;
but it smote him to the heart to see her treated so; and as she turned for
a last glimpse of him, whilst the crowd was swallowing her from his sight,
she seemed so wounded, so broken-hearted, that a shame fell upon him which
consumed his pride to ashes, and withered his stolen royalty. His
grandeurs were stricken valueless: they seemed to fall away from him like
rotten rags.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link31-359" id="link31-359"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-359.jpg (164K)" src="images/31-359.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The procession moved on, and still on, through ever augmenting splendours
and ever augmenting tempests of welcome; but to Tom Canty they were as if
they had not been. He neither saw nor heard. Royalty had lost
its grace and sweetness; its pomps were become a reproach. Remorse
was eating his heart out. He said, “Would God I were free of
my captivity!”</p>
<p>He had unconsciously dropped back into the phraseology of the first days
of his compulsory greatness.</p>
<p>The shining pageant still went winding like a radiant and interminable
serpent down the crooked lanes of the quaint old city, and through the
huzzaing hosts; but still the King rode with bowed head and vacant eyes,
seeing only his mother’s face and that wounded look in it.</p>
<p>“Largess, largess!” The cry fell upon an unheeding ear.</p>
<p>“Long live Edward of England!” It seemed as if the earth
shook with the explosion; but there was no response from the King. He
heard it only as one hears the thunder of the surf when it is blown to the
ear out of a great distance, for it was smothered under another sound
which was still nearer, in his own breast, in his accusing conscience—a
voice which kept repeating those shameful words, “I do not know you,
woman!”</p>
<p>The words smote upon the King’s soul as the strokes of a funeral
bell smite upon the soul of a surviving friend when they remind him of
secret treacheries suffered at his hands by him that is gone.</p>
<p>New glories were unfolded at every turning; new wonders, new marvels,
sprang into view; the pent clamours of waiting batteries were released;
new raptures poured from the throats of the waiting multitudes: but
the King gave no sign, and the accusing voice that went moaning through
his comfortless breast was all the sound he heard.</p>
<p>By-and-by the gladness in the faces of the populace changed a little, and
became touched with a something like solicitude or anxiety: an
abatement in the volume of the applause was observable too. The Lord
Protector was quick to notice these things: he was as quick to
detect the cause. He spurred to the King’s side, bent low in
his saddle, uncovered, and said—</p>
<p>“My liege, it is an ill time for dreaming. The people observe
thy downcast head, thy clouded mien, and they take it for an omen. Be
advised: unveil the sun of royalty, and let it shine upon these
boding vapours, and disperse them. Lift up thy face, and smile upon
the people.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link31-361" id="link31-361"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-361.jpg (78K)" src="images/31-361.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>So saying, the Duke scattered a handful of coins to right and left, then
retired to his place. The mock King did mechanically as he had been
bidden. His smile had no heart in it, but few eyes were near enough
or sharp enough to detect that. The noddings of his plumed head as
he saluted his subjects were full of grace and graciousness; the largess
which he delivered from his hand was royally liberal: so the people’s
anxiety vanished, and the acclamations burst forth again in as mighty a
volume as before.</p>
<p>Still once more, a little before the progress was ended, the Duke was
obliged to ride forward, and make remonstrance. He whispered—</p>
<p>“O dread sovereign! shake off these fatal humours; the eyes of the
world are upon thee.” Then he added with sharp annoyance,
“Perdition catch that crazy pauper! ’twas she that hath
disturbed your Highness.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link31-362" id="link31-362"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link31-362.jpg (119K)" src="images/31-362.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The gorgeous figure turned a lustreless eye upon the Duke, and said in a
dead voice—</p>
<p>“She was my mother!”</p>
<p>“My God!” groaned the Protector as he reined his horse
backward to his post, “the omen was pregnant with prophecy. He
is gone mad again!”</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c32" id="c32"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link32-363" id="link32-363"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-363.jpg (51K)" src="images/32-363.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXXII. Coronation Day.</p>
<p>Let us go backward a few hours, and place ourselves in Westminster Abbey,
at four o’clock in the morning of this memorable Coronation Day.
We are not without company; for although it is still night, we find
the torch-lighted galleries already filling up with people who are well
content to sit still and wait seven or eight hours till the time shall
come for them to see what they may not hope to see twice in their lives—the
coronation of a King. Yes, London and Westminster have been astir
ever since the warning guns boomed at three o’clock, and already
crowds of untitled rich folk who have bought the privilege of trying to
find sitting-room in the galleries are flocking in at the entrances
reserved for their sort.</p>
<p>The hours drag along tediously enough. All stir has ceased for some
time, for every gallery has long ago been packed. We may sit, now,
and look and think at our leisure. We have glimpses, here and there
and yonder, through the dim cathedral twilight, of portions of many
galleries and balconies, wedged full with other people, the other portions
of these galleries and balconies being cut off from sight by intervening
pillars and architectural projections. We have in view the whole of
the great north transept—empty, and waiting for England’s
privileged ones. We see also the ample area or platform, carpeted
with rich stuffs, whereon the throne stands. The throne occupies the
centre of the platform, and is raised above it upon an elevation of four
steps. Within the seat of the throne is enclosed a rough flat rock—the
stone of Scone—which many generations of Scottish kings sat on to be
crowned, and so it in time became holy enough to answer a like purpose for
English monarchs. Both the throne and its footstool are covered with
cloth of gold.</p>
<p>Stillness reigns, the torches blink dully, the time drags heavily. But at
last the lagging daylight asserts itself, the torches are extinguished,
and a mellow radiance suffuses the great spaces. All features of the noble
building are distinct now, but soft and dreamy, for the sun is lightly
veiled with clouds.</p>
<p>At seven o’clock the first break in the drowsy monotony occurs; for
on the stroke of this hour the first peeress enters the transept, clothed
like Solomon for splendour, and is conducted to her appointed place by an
official clad in satins and velvets, whilst a duplicate of him gathers up
the lady’s long train, follows after, and, when the lady is seated,
arranges the train across her lap for her. He then places her
footstool according to her desire, after which he puts her coronet where
it will be convenient to her hand when the time for the simultaneous
coroneting of the nobles shall arrive.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-366" id="link32-366"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-366.jpg (53K)" src="images/32-366.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>By this time the peeresses are flowing in in a glittering stream, and the
satin-clad officials are flitting and glinting everywhere, seating them
and making them comfortable. The scene is animated enough now.
There is stir and life, and shifting colour everywhere. After
a time, quiet reigns again; for the peeresses are all come and are all in
their places, a solid acre or such a matter, of human flowers, resplendent
in variegated colours, and frosted like a Milky Way with diamonds. There
are all ages here: brown, wrinkled, white-haired dowagers who are able to
go back, and still back, down the stream of time, and recall the crowning
of Richard III. and the troublous days of that old forgotten age; and
there are handsome middle-aged dames; and lovely and gracious young
matrons; and gentle and beautiful young girls, with beaming eyes and fresh
complexions, who may possibly put on their jewelled coronets awkwardly
when the great time comes; for the matter will be new to them, and their
excitement will be a sore hindrance. Still, this may not happen, for the
hair of all these ladies has been arranged with a special view to the
swift and successful lodging of the crown in its place when the signal
comes.</p>
<p>We have seen that this massed array of peeresses is sown thick with
diamonds, and we also see that it is a marvellous spectacle—but now
we are about to be astonished in earnest. About nine, the clouds
suddenly break away and a shaft of sunshine cleaves the mellow atmosphere,
and drifts slowly along the ranks of ladies; and every rank it touches
flames into a dazzling splendour of many-coloured fires, and we tingle to
our finger-tips with the electric thrill that is shot through us by the
surprise and the beauty of the spectacle! Presently a special envoy
from some distant corner of the Orient, marching with the general body of
foreign ambassadors, crosses this bar of sunshine, and we catch our
breath, the glory that streams and flashes and palpitates about him is so
overpowering; for he is crusted from head to heel with gems, and his
slightest movement showers a dancing radiance all around him.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-368" id="link32-368"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-368.jpg (158K)" src="images/32-368.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Let us change the tense for convenience. The time drifted along—one
hour—two hours—two hours and a half; then the deep booming of
artillery told that the King and his grand procession had arrived at last;
so the waiting multitude rejoiced. All knew that a further delay
must follow, for the King must be prepared and robed for the solemn
ceremony; but this delay would be pleasantly occupied by the assembling of
the peers of the realm in their stately robes. These were conducted
ceremoniously to their seats, and their coronets placed conveniently at
hand; and meanwhile the multitude in the galleries were alive with
interest, for most of them were beholding for the first time, dukes,
earls, and barons, whose names had been historical for five hundred years.
When all were finally seated, the spectacle from the galleries and
all coigns of vantage was complete; a gorgeous one to look upon and to
remember.</p>
<p>Now the robed and mitred great heads of the church, and their attendants,
filed in upon the platform and took their appointed places; these were
followed by the Lord Protector and other great officials, and these again
by a steel-clad detachment of the Guard.</p>
<p>There was a waiting pause; then, at a signal, a triumphant peal of music
burst forth, and Tom Canty, clothed in a long robe of cloth of gold,
appeared at a door, and stepped upon the platform. The entire
multitude rose, and the ceremony of the Recognition ensued.</p>
<p>Then a noble anthem swept the Abbey with its rich waves of sound; and thus
heralded and welcomed, Tom Canty was conducted to the throne. The
ancient ceremonies went on, with impressive solemnity, whilst the audience
gazed; and as they drew nearer and nearer to completion, Tom Canty grew
pale, and still paler, and a deep and steadily deepening woe and
despondency settled down upon his spirits and upon his remorseful heart.</p>
<p>At last the final act was at hand. The Archbishop of Canterbury
lifted up the crown of England from its cushion and held it out over the
trembling mock-King’s head. In the same instant a
rainbow-radiance flashed along the spacious transept; for with one impulse
every individual in the great concourse of nobles lifted a coronet and
poised it over his or her head—and paused in that attitude.</p>
<p>A deep hush pervaded the Abbey. At this impressive moment, a
startling apparition intruded upon the scene—an apparition observed
by none in the absorbed multitude, until it suddenly appeared, moving up
the great central aisle. It was a boy, bareheaded, ill shod, and
clothed in coarse plebeian garments that were falling to rags. He
raised his hand with a solemnity which ill comported with his soiled and
sorry aspect, and delivered this note of warning—</p>
<p>“I forbid you to set the crown of England upon that forfeited head.
I am the King!”</p>
<p>In an instant several indignant hands were laid upon the boy; but in the
same instant Tom Canty, in his regal vestments, made a swift step forward,
and cried out in a ringing voice—</p>
<p>“Loose him and forbear! He <i>is</i> the King!”</p>
<p>A sort of panic of astonishment swept the assemblage, and they partly rose
in their places and stared in a bewildered way at one another and at the
chief figures in this scene, like persons who wondered whether they were
awake and in their senses, or asleep and dreaming. The Lord
Protector was as amazed as the rest, but quickly recovered himself, and
exclaimed in a voice of authority—</p>
<p>“Mind not his Majesty, his malady is upon him again—seize the
vagabond!”</p>
<p>He would have been obeyed, but the mock-King stamped his foot and cried
out—</p>
<p>“On your peril! Touch him not, he is the King!”</p>
<p>The hands were withheld; a paralysis fell upon the house; no one moved, no
one spoke; indeed, no one knew how to act or what to say, in so strange
and surprising an emergency. While all minds were struggling to
right themselves, the boy still moved steadily forward, with high port and
confident mien; he had never halted from the beginning; and while the
tangled minds still floundered helplessly, he stepped upon the platform,
and the mock-King ran with a glad face to meet him; and fell on his knees
before him and said—</p>
<p>“Oh, my lord the King, let poor Tom Canty be first to swear fealty
to thee, and say, ‘Put on thy crown and enter into thine own again!’”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-370" id="link32-370"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-370.jpg (121K)" src="images/32-370.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The Lord Protector’s eye fell sternly upon the new-comer’s
face; but straightway the sternness vanished away, and gave place to an
expression of wondering surprise. This thing happened also to the
other great officers. They glanced at each other, and retreated a
step by a common and unconscious impulse. The thought in each mind
was the same: "What a strange resemblance!”</p>
<p>The Lord Protector reflected a moment or two in perplexity, then he said,
with grave respectfulness—</p>
<p>“By your favour, sir, I desire to ask certain questions which—”</p>
<p>“I will answer them, my lord.”</p>
<p>The Duke asked him many questions about the Court, the late King, the
prince, the princesses—the boy answered them correctly and without
hesitating. He described the rooms of state in the palace, the late
King’s apartments, and those of the Prince of Wales.</p>
<p>It was strange; it was wonderful; yes, it was unaccountable—so all
said that heard it. The tide was beginning to turn, and Tom Canty’s
hopes to run high, when the Lord Protector shook his head and said—</p>
<p>“It is true it is most wonderful—but it is no more than our
lord the King likewise can do.” This remark, and this
reference to himself as still the King, saddened Tom Canty, and he felt
his hopes crumbling from under him. "These are not <i>proofs</i>,”
added the Protector.</p>
<p>The tide was turning very fast now, very fast indeed—but in the
wrong direction; it was leaving poor Tom Canty stranded on the throne, and
sweeping the other out to sea. The Lord Protector communed with
himself—shook his head—the thought forced itself upon him,
“It is perilous to the State and to us all, to entertain so fateful
a riddle as this; it could divide the nation and undermine the throne.”
He turned and said—</p>
<p>“Sir Thomas, arrest this—No, hold!” His face
lighted, and he confronted the ragged candidate with this question—</p>
<p>“Where lieth the Great Seal? Answer me this truly, and the
riddle is unriddled; for only he that was Prince of Wales <i>can</i> so
answer! On so trivial a thing hang a throne and a dynasty!”</p>
<p>It was a lucky thought, a happy thought. That it was so considered
by the great officials was manifested by the silent applause that shot
from eye to eye around their circle in the form of bright approving
glances. Yes, none but the true prince could dissolve the stubborn mystery
of the vanished Great Seal—this forlorn little impostor had been
taught his lesson well, but here his teachings must fail, for his teacher
himself could not answer <i>that</i> question—ah, very good, very
good indeed; now we shall be rid of this troublesome and perilous business
in short order! And so they nodded invisibly and smiled inwardly with
satisfaction, and looked to see this foolish lad stricken with a palsy of
guilty confusion. How surprised they were, then, to see nothing of the
sort happen—how they marvelled to hear him answer up promptly, in a
confident and untroubled voice, and say—</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-373" id="link32-373"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-373.jpg (201K)" src="images/32-373.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“There is nought in this riddle that is difficult.” Then,
without so much as a by-your-leave to anybody, he turned and gave this
command, with the easy manner of one accustomed to doing such things:
“My Lord St. John, go you to my private cabinet in the palace—for
none knoweth the place better than you—and, close down to the floor,
in the left corner remotest from the door that opens from the
ante-chamber, you shall find in the wall a brazen nail-head; press upon it
and a little jewel-closet will fly open which not even you do know of—no,
nor any soul else in all the world but me and the trusty artisan that did
contrive it for me. The first thing that falleth under your eye will be
the Great Seal—fetch it hither.”</p>
<p>All the company wondered at this speech, and wondered still more to see
the little mendicant pick out this peer without hesitancy or apparent fear
of mistake, and call him by name with such a placidly convincing air of
having known him all his life. The peer was almost surprised into
obeying. He even made a movement as if to go, but quickly recovered
his tranquil attitude and confessed his blunder with a blush. Tom
Canty turned upon him and said, sharply—</p>
<p>“Why dost thou hesitate? Hast not heard the King’s
command? Go!”</p>
<p>The Lord St. John made a deep obeisance—and it was observed that it
was a significantly cautious and non-committal one, it not being delivered
at either of the kings, but at the neutral ground about half-way between
the two—and took his leave.</p>
<p>Now began a movement of the gorgeous particles of that official group
which was slow, scarcely perceptible, and yet steady and persistent—a
movement such as is observed in a kaleidoscope that is turned slowly,
whereby the components of one splendid cluster fall away and join
themselves to another—a movement which, little by little, in the
present case, dissolved the glittering crowd that stood about Tom Canty
and clustered it together again in the neighbourhood of the new-comer.
Tom Canty stood almost alone. Now ensued a brief season of deep
suspense and waiting—during which even the few faint hearts still
remaining near Tom Canty gradually scraped together courage enough to
glide, one by one, over to the majority. So at last Tom Canty, in
his royal robes and jewels, stood wholly alone and isolated from the
world, a conspicuous figure, occupying an eloquent vacancy.</p>
<p>Now the Lord St. John was seen returning. As he advanced up the
mid-aisle the interest was so intense that the low murmur of conversation
in the great assemblage died out and was succeeded by a profound hush, a
breathless stillness, through which his footfalls pulsed with a dull and
distant sound. Every eye was fastened upon him as he moved along.
He reached the platform, paused a moment, then moved toward Tom
Canty with a deep obeisance, and said—</p>
<p>“Sire, the Seal is not there!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-375" id="link32-375"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-375.jpg (77K)" src="images/32-375.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>A mob does not melt away from the presence of a plague-patient with more
haste than the band of pallid and terrified courtiers melted away from the
presence of the shabby little claimant of the Crown. In a moment he
stood all alone, without friend or supporter, a target upon which was
concentrated a bitter fire of scornful and angry looks. The Lord
Protector called out fiercely—</p>
<p>“Cast the beggar into the street, and scourge him through the town—the
paltry knave is worth no more consideration!”</p>
<p>Officers of the guard sprang forward to obey, but Tom Canty waved them off
and said—</p>
<p>“Back! Whoso touches him perils his life!”</p>
<p>The Lord Protector was perplexed in the last degree. He said to the
Lord St. John—</p>
<p>“Searched you well?—but it boots not to ask that. It
doth seem passing strange. Little things, trifles, slip out of one’s
ken, and one does not think it matter for surprise; but how so bulky a
thing as the Seal of England can vanish away and no man be able to get
track of it again—a massy golden disk—”</p>
<p>Tom Canty, with beaming eyes, sprang forward and shouted—</p>
<p>“Hold, that is enough! Was it round?—and thick?—and
had it letters and devices graved upon it?—yes? Oh, <i>now</i>
I know what this Great Seal is that there’s been such worry and
pother about. An’ ye had described it to me, ye could have had it
three weeks ago. Right well I know where it lies; but it was not I
that put it there—first.”</p>
<p>“Who, then, my liege?” asked the Lord Protector.</p>
<p>“He that stands there—the rightful King of England. And
he shall tell you himself where it lies—then you will believe he
knew it of his own knowledge. Bethink thee, my King—spur thy
memory—it was the last, the very <i>last</i> thing thou didst that
day before thou didst rush forth from the palace, clothed in my rags, to
punish the soldier that insulted me.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-377" id="link32-377"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-377.jpg (85K)" src="images/32-377.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>A silence ensued, undisturbed by a movement or a whisper, and all eyes
were fixed upon the new-comer, who stood, with bent head and corrugated
brow, groping in his memory among a thronging multitude of valueless
recollections for one single little elusive fact, which, found, would seat
him upon a throne—unfound, would leave him as he was, for good and
all—a pauper and an outcast. Moment after moment passed—the
moments built themselves into minutes—still the boy struggled
silently on, and gave no sign. But at last he heaved a sigh, shook
his head slowly, and said, with a trembling lip and in a despondent voice—</p>
<p>“I call the scene back—all of it—but the Seal hath no
place in it.” He paused, then looked up, and said with gentle
dignity, “My lords and gentlemen, if ye will rob your rightful
sovereign of his own for lack of this evidence which he is not able to
furnish, I may not stay ye, being powerless. But—”</p>
<p>“Oh, folly, oh, madness, my King!” cried Tom Canty, in a
panic, “wait!—think! Do not give up!—the cause is
not lost! Nor <i>shall</i> be, neither! List to what I say—follow
every word—I am going to bring that morning back again, every hap
just as it happened. We talked—I told you of my sisters, Nan
and Bet—ah, yes, you remember that; and about mine old grandam—and
the rough games of the lads of Offal Court—yes, you remember these
things also; very well, follow me still, you shall recall everything.
You gave me food and drink, and did with princely courtesy send away
the servants, so that my low breeding might not shame me before them—ah,
yes, this also you remember.”</p>
<p>As Tom checked off his details, and the other boy nodded his head in
recognition of them, the great audience and the officials stared in
puzzled wonderment; the tale sounded like true history, yet how could this
impossible conjunction between a prince and a beggar-boy have come about?
Never was a company of people so perplexed, so interested, and so
stupefied, before.</p>
<p>“For a jest, my prince, we did exchange garments. Then we
stood before a mirror; and so alike were we that both said it seemed as if
there had been no change made—yes, you remember that. Then you
noticed that the soldier had hurt my hand—look! here it is, I cannot
yet even write with it, the fingers are so stiff. At this your
Highness sprang up, vowing vengeance upon that soldier, and ran towards
the door—you passed a table—that thing you call the Seal lay
on that table—you snatched it up and looked eagerly about, as if for
a place to hide it—your eye caught sight of—”</p>
<p>“There, ’tis sufficient!—and the good God be thanked!”
exclaimed the ragged claimant, in a mighty excitement. "Go, my good
St. John—in an arm-piece of the Milanese armour that hangs on the
wall, thou’lt find the Seal!”</p>
<p>“Right, my King! right!” cried Tom Canty; “<i>Now</i>
the sceptre of England is thine own; and it were better for him that would
dispute it that he had been born dumb! Go, my Lord St. John, give
thy feet wings!”</p>
<p>The whole assemblage was on its feet now, and well-nigh out of its mind
with uneasiness, apprehension, and consuming excitement. On the
floor and on the platform a deafening buzz of frantic conversation burst
forth, and for some time nobody knew anything or heard anything or was
interested in anything but what his neighbour was shouting into his ear,
or he was shouting into his neighbour’s ear. Time—nobody
knew how much of it—swept by unheeded and unnoted. At last a
sudden hush fell upon the house, and in the same moment St. John appeared
upon the platform, and held the Great Seal aloft in his hand. Then
such a shout went up—</p>
<p>“Long live the true King!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-379" id="link32-379"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-379.jpg (169K)" src="images/32-379.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>For five minutes the air quaked with shouts and the crash of musical
instruments, and was white with a storm of waving handkerchiefs; and
through it all a ragged lad, the most conspicuous figure in England,
stood, flushed and happy and proud, in the centre of the spacious
platform, with the great vassals of the kingdom kneeling around him.</p>
<p>Then all rose, and Tom Canty cried out—</p>
<p>“Now, O my King, take these regal garments back, and give poor Tom,
thy servant, his shreds and remnants again.”</p>
<p>The Lord Protector spoke up—</p>
<p>“Let the small varlet be stripped and flung into the Tower.”</p>
<p>But the new King, the true King, said—</p>
<p>“I will not have it so. But for him I had not got my crown
again—none shall lay a hand upon him to harm him. And as for
thee, my good uncle, my Lord Protector, this conduct of thine is not
grateful toward this poor lad, for I hear he hath made thee a duke”—the
Protector blushed—“yet he was not a king; wherefore what is
thy fine title worth now? To-morrow you shall sue to me, <i>through
him</i>, for its confirmation, else no duke, but a simple earl, shalt thou
remain.”</p>
<p>Under this rebuke, his Grace the Duke of Somerset retired a little from
the front for the moment. The King turned to Tom, and said kindly—“My
poor boy, how was it that you could remember where I hid the Seal when I
could not remember it myself?”</p>
<p>“Ah, my King, that was easy, since I used it divers days.”</p>
<p>“Used it—yet could not explain where it was?”</p>
<p>“I did not know it was <i>that</i> they wanted. They did not
describe it, your Majesty.”</p>
<p>“Then how used you it?”</p>
<p>The red blood began to steal up into Tom’s cheeks, and he dropped
his eyes and was silent.</p>
<p>“Speak up, good lad, and fear nothing,” said the King. "How
used you the Great Seal of England?”</p>
<p>Tom stammered a moment, in a pathetic confusion, then got it out—</p>
<p>“To crack nuts with!”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link32-381" id="link32-381"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link32-381.jpg (59K)" src="images/32-381.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Poor child, the avalanche of laughter that greeted this nearly swept him
off his feet. But if a doubt remained in any mind that Tom Canty was
not the King of England and familiar with the august appurtenances of
royalty, this reply disposed of it utterly.</p>
<p>Meantime the sumptuous robe of state had been removed from Tom’s
shoulders to the King’s, whose rags were effectually hidden from
sight under it. Then the coronation ceremonies were resumed; the
true King was anointed and the crown set upon his head, whilst cannon
thundered the news to the city, and all London seemed to rock with
applause.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c33" id="c33"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link33-383" id="link33-383"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link33-383.jpg (86K)" src="images/33-383.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Chapter XXXIII. Edward as King.</p>
<p>Miles Hendon was picturesque enough before he got into the riot on London
Bridge—he was more so when he got out of it. He had but little
money when he got in, none at all when he got out. The pickpockets
had stripped him of his last farthing.</p>
<p>But no matter, so he found his boy. Being a soldier, he did not go
at his task in a random way, but set to work, first of all, to arrange his
campaign.</p>
<p>What would the boy naturally do? Where would he naturally go? Well—argued
Miles—he would naturally go to his former haunts, for that is the
instinct of unsound minds, when homeless and forsaken, as well as of sound
ones. Whereabouts were his former haunts? His rags, taken
together with the low villain who seemed to know him and who even claimed
to be his father, indicated that his home was in one or another of the
poorest and meanest districts of London. Would the search for him be
difficult, or long? No, it was likely to be easy and brief. He
would not hunt for the boy, he would hunt for a crowd; in the centre of a
big crowd or a little one, sooner or later, he should find his poor little
friend, sure; and the mangy mob would be entertaining itself with
pestering and aggravating the boy, who would be proclaiming himself King,
as usual. Then Miles Hendon would cripple some of those people, and
carry off his little ward, and comfort and cheer him with loving words,
and the two would never be separated any more.</p>
<p>So Miles started on his quest. Hour after hour he tramped through
back alleys and squalid streets, seeking groups and crowds, and finding no
end of them, but never any sign of the boy. This greatly surprised
him, but did not discourage him. To his notion, there was nothing
the matter with his plan of campaign; the only miscalculation about it was
that the campaign was becoming a lengthy one, whereas he had expected it
to be short.</p>
<p>When daylight arrived, at last, he had made many a mile, and canvassed
many a crowd, but the only result was that he was tolerably tired, rather
hungry and very sleepy. He wanted some breakfast, but there was no
way to get it. To beg for it did not occur to him; as to pawning his
sword, he would as soon have thought of parting with his honour; he could
spare some of his clothes—yes, but one could as easily find a
customer for a disease as for such clothes.</p>
<p>At noon he was still tramping—among the rabble which followed after
the royal procession, now; for he argued that this regal display would
attract his little lunatic powerfully. He followed the pageant
through all its devious windings about London, and all the way to
Westminster and the Abbey. He drifted here and there amongst the
multitudes that were massed in the vicinity for a weary long time, baffled
and perplexed, and finally wandered off, thinking, and trying to contrive
some way to better his plan of campaign. By-and-by, when he came to
himself out of his musings, he discovered that the town was far behind him
and that the day was growing old. He was near the river, and in the
country; it was a region of fine rural seats—not the sort of
district to welcome clothes like his.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link33-386" id="link33-386"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link33-386.jpg (94K)" src="images/33-386.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>It was not at all cold; so he stretched himself on the ground in the lee
of a hedge to rest and think. Drowsiness presently began to settle
upon his senses; the faint and far-off boom of cannon was wafted to his
ear, and he said to himself, “The new King is crowned,” and
straightway fell asleep. He had not slept or rested, before, for
more than thirty hours. He did not wake again until near the middle of the
next morning.</p>
<p>He got up, lame, stiff, and half famished, washed himself in the river,
stayed his stomach with a pint or two of water, and trudged off toward
Westminster, grumbling at himself for having wasted so much time. Hunger
helped him to a new plan, now; he would try to get speech with old Sir
Humphrey Marlow and borrow a few marks, and—but that was enough of a
plan for the present; it would be time enough to enlarge it when this
first stage should be accomplished.</p>
<p>Toward eleven o’clock he approached the palace; and although a host
of showy people were about him, moving in the same direction, he was not
inconspicuous—his costume took care of that. He watched these
people’s faces narrowly, hoping to find a charitable one whose
possessor might be willing to carry his name to the old lieutenant—as
to trying to get into the palace himself, that was simply out of the
question.</p>
<p>Presently our whipping-boy passed him, then wheeled about and scanned his
figure well, saying to himself, “An’ that is not the very
vagabond his Majesty is in such a worry about, then am I an ass—though
belike I was that before. He answereth the description to a rag—that
God should make two such would be to cheapen miracles by wasteful
repetition. I would I could contrive an excuse to speak with him.”</p>
<p>Miles Hendon saved him the trouble; for he turned about, then, as a man
generally will when somebody mesmerises him by gazing hard at him from
behind; and observing a strong interest in the boy’s eyes, he
stepped toward him and said—</p>
<p>“You have just come out from the palace; do you belong there?”</p>
<p>“Yes, your worship.”</p>
<p>“Know you Sir Humphrey Marlow?”</p>
<p>The boy started, and said to himself, “Lord! mine old departed
father!” Then he answered aloud, “Right well, your worship.”</p>
<p>“Good—is he within?”</p>
<p>“Yes,” said the boy; and added, to himself, “within his
grave.”</p>
<p>“Might I crave your favour to carry my name to him, and say I beg to
say a word in his ear?”</p>
<p>“I will despatch the business right willingly, fair sir.”</p>
<p>“Then say Miles Hendon, son of Sir Richard, is here without—I
shall be greatly bounden to you, my good lad.”</p>
<p>The boy looked disappointed. "The King did not name him so,”
he said to himself; “but it mattereth not, this is his twin brother,
and can give his Majesty news of t’other Sir-Odds-and-Ends, I
warrant.” So he said to Miles, “Step in there a moment,
good sir, and wait till I bring you word.”</p>
<p>Hendon retired to the place indicated—it was a recess sunk in the
palace wall, with a stone bench in it—a shelter for sentinels in bad
weather. He had hardly seated himself when some halberdiers, in charge of
an officer, passed by. The officer saw him, halted his men, and
commanded Hendon to come forth. He obeyed, and was promptly arrested
as a suspicious character prowling within the precincts of the palace.
Things began to look ugly. Poor Miles was going to explain,
but the officer roughly silenced him, and ordered his men to disarm him
and search him.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link33-389" id="link33-389"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link33-389.jpg (117K)" src="images/33-389.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>“God of his mercy grant that they find somewhat,” said poor
Miles; “I have searched enow, and failed, yet is my need greater
than theirs.”</p>
<p>Nothing was found but a document. The officer tore it open, and
Hendon smiled when he recognised the ‘pot-hooks’ made by his
lost little friend that black day at Hendon Hall. The officer’s
face grew dark as he read the English paragraph, and Miles blenched to the
opposite colour as he listened.</p>
<p>“Another new claimant of the Crown!” cried the officer. "Verily
they breed like rabbits, to-day. Seize the rascal, men, and see ye
keep him fast whilst I convey this precious paper within and send it to
the King.”</p>
<p>He hurried away, leaving the prisoner in the grip of the halberdiers.</p>
<p>“Now is my evil luck ended at last,” muttered Hendon, “for
I shall dangle at a rope’s end for a certainty, by reason of that
bit of writing. And what will become of my poor lad!—ah, only
the good God knoweth.”</p>
<p>By-and-by he saw the officer coming again, in a great hurry; so he plucked
his courage together, purposing to meet his trouble as became a man.
The officer ordered the men to loose the prisoner and return his
sword to him; then bowed respectfully, and said—</p>
<p>“Please you, sir, to follow me.”</p>
<p>Hendon followed, saying to himself, “An’ I were not travelling
to death and judgment, and so must needs economise in sin, I would
throttle this knave for his mock courtesy.”</p>
<p>The two traversed a populous court, and arrived at the grand entrance of
the palace, where the officer, with another bow, delivered Hendon into the
hands of a gorgeous official, who received him with profound respect and
led him forward through a great hall, lined on both sides with rows of
splendid flunkeys (who made reverential obeisance as the two passed along,
but fell into death-throes of silent laughter at our stately scarecrow the
moment his back was turned), and up a broad staircase, among flocks of
fine folk, and finally conducted him into a vast room, clove a passage for
him through the assembled nobility of England, then made a bow, reminded
him to take his hat off, and left him standing in the middle of the room,
a mark for all eyes, for plenty of indignant frowns, and for a sufficiency
of amused and derisive smiles.</p>
<p>Miles Hendon was entirely bewildered. There sat the young King,
under a canopy of state, five steps away, with his head bent down and
aside, speaking with a sort of human bird of paradise—a duke, maybe.
Hendon observed to himself that it was hard enough to be sentenced
to death in the full vigour of life, without having this peculiarly public
humiliation added. He wished the King would hurry about it—some
of the gaudy people near by were becoming pretty offensive. At this
moment the King raised his head slightly, and Hendon caught a good view of
his face. The sight nearly took his breath away!—He stood gazing at
the fair young face like one transfixed; then presently ejaculated—</p>
<p>“Lo, the Lord of the Kingdom of Dreams and Shadows on his throne!”</p>
<p>He muttered some broken sentences, still gazing and marvelling; then
turned his eyes around and about, scanning the gorgeous throng and the
splendid saloon, murmuring, “But these are <i>real</i>—verily
these are <i>real</i>—surely it is not a dream.”</p>
<p>He stared at the King again—and thought, “<i>Is</i> it a dream
. . . or <i>is</i> he the veritable Sovereign of England, and not the
friendless poor Tom o’ Bedlam I took him for—who shall solve
me this riddle?”</p>
<p>A sudden idea flashed in his eye, and he strode to the wall, gathered up a
chair, brought it back, planted it on the floor, and sat down in it!</p>
<p><SPAN name="link33-392" id="link33-392"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link33-392.jpg (184K)" src="images/33-392.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>A buzz of indignation broke out, a rough hand was laid upon him and a
voice exclaimed—</p>
<p>“Up, thou mannerless clown! would’st sit in the presence of
the King?”</p>
<p>The disturbance attracted his Majesty’s attention, who stretched
forth his hand and cried out—</p>
<p>“Touch him not, it is his right!”</p>
<p>The throng fell back, stupefied. The King went on—</p>
<p>“Learn ye all, ladies, lords, and gentlemen, that this is my trusty
and well-beloved servant, Miles Hendon, who interposed his good sword and
saved his prince from bodily harm and possible death—and for this he
is a knight, by the King’s voice. Also learn, that for a
higher service, in that he saved his sovereign stripes and shame, taking
these upon himself, he is a peer of England, Earl of Kent, and shall have
gold and lands meet for the dignity. More—the privilege which
he hath just exercised is his by royal grant; for we have ordained that
the chiefs of his line shall have and hold the right to sit in the
presence of the Majesty of England henceforth, age after age, so long as
the crown shall endure. Molest him not.”</p>
<p>Two persons, who, through delay, had only arrived from the country during
this morning, and had now been in this room only five minutes, stood
listening to these words and looking at the King, then at the scarecrow,
then at the King again, in a sort of torpid bewilderment. These were
Sir Hugh and the Lady Edith. But the new Earl did not see them.
He was still staring at the monarch, in a dazed way, and muttering—</p>
<p>“Oh, body o’ me! <i>this</i> my pauper! This my
lunatic! This is he whom <i>I</i> would show what grandeur was, in
my house of seventy rooms and seven-and-twenty servants! This is he
who had never known aught but rags for raiment, kicks for comfort, and
offal for diet! This is he whom <i>I</i> adopted and would make
respectable! Would God I had a bag to hide my head in!”</p>
<p>Then his manners suddenly came back to him, and he dropped upon his knees,
with his hands between the King’s, and swore allegiance and did
homage for his lands and titles. Then he rose and stood respectfully
aside, a mark still for all eyes—and much envy, too.</p>
<p>Now the King discovered Sir Hugh, and spoke out with wrathful voice and
kindling eye—</p>
<p>“Strip this robber of his false show and stolen estates, and put him
under lock and key till I have need of him.”</p>
<p>The late Sir Hugh was led away.</p>
<p><SPAN name="link33-394" id="link33-394"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link33-394.jpg (165K)" src="images/33-394.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>There was a stir at the other end of the room, now; the assemblage fell
apart, and Tom Canty, quaintly but richly clothed, marched down, between
these living walls, preceded by an usher. He knelt before the King,
who said—</p>
<p>“I have learned the story of these past few weeks, and am well
pleased with thee. Thou hast governed the realm with right royal
gentleness and mercy. Thou hast found thy mother and thy sisters
again? Good; they shall be cared for—and thy father shall
hang, if thou desire it and the law consent. Know, all ye that hear
my voice, that from this day, they that abide in the shelter of Christ’s
Hospital and share the King’s bounty shall have their minds and
hearts fed, as well as their baser parts; and this boy shall dwell there,
and hold the chief place in its honourable body of governors, during life.
And for that he hath been a king, it is meet that other than common
observance shall be his due; wherefore note this his dress of state, for
by it he shall be known, and none shall copy it; and wheresoever he shall
come, it shall remind the people that he hath been royal, in his time, and
none shall deny him his due of reverence or fail to give him salutation.
He hath the throne’s protection, he hath the crown’s
support, he shall be known and called by the honourable title of the King’s
Ward.”</p>
<p><SPAN name="link33-395" id="link33-395"></SPAN></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link33-395.jpg (145K)" src="images/33-395.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>The proud and happy Tom Canty rose and kissed the King’s hand, and
was conducted from the presence. He did not waste any time, but flew
to his mother, to tell her and Nan and Bet all about it and get them to
help him enjoy the great news. {1}</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c34" id="c34"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link34-397" id="link34-397"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link34-397.jpg (58K)" src="images/34-397.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>Conclusion. Justice and retribution.</p>
<p>When the mysteries were all cleared up, it came out, by confession of Hugh
Hendon, that his wife had repudiated Miles by his command, that day at
Hendon Hall—a command assisted and supported by the perfectly
trustworthy promise that if she did not deny that he was Miles Hendon, and
stand firmly to it, he would have her life; whereupon she said, “Take
it!”—she did not value it—and she would not repudiate
Miles; then the husband said he would spare her life but have Miles
assassinated! This was a different matter; so she gave her word and
kept it.</p>
<p>Hugh was not prosecuted for his threats or for stealing his brother’s
estates and title, because the wife and brother would not testify against
him—and the former would not have been allowed to do it, even if she
had wanted to. Hugh deserted his wife and went over to the
continent, where he presently died; and by-and-by the Earl of Kent married
his relict. There were grand times and rejoicings at Hendon village when
the couple paid their first visit to the Hall.</p>
<p>Tom Canty’s father was never heard of again.</p>
<p>The King sought out the farmer who had been branded and sold as a slave,
and reclaimed him from his evil life with the Ruffler’s gang, and
put him in the way of a comfortable livelihood.</p>
<p>He also took that old lawyer out of prison and remitted his fine. He
provided good homes for the daughters of the two Baptist women whom he saw
burned at the stake, and roundly punished the official who laid the
undeserved stripes upon Miles Hendon’s back.</p>
<p>He saved from the gallows the boy who had captured the stray falcon, and
also the woman who had stolen a remnant of cloth from a weaver; but he was
too late to save the man who had been convicted of killing a deer in the
royal forest.</p>
<p>He showed favour to the justice who had pitied him when he was supposed to
have stolen a pig, and he had the gratification of seeing him grow in the
public esteem and become a great and honoured man.</p>
<p>As long as the King lived he was fond of telling the story of his
adventures, all through, from the hour that the sentinel cuffed him away
from the palace gate till the final midnight when he deftly mixed himself
into a gang of hurrying workmen and so slipped into the Abbey and climbed
up and hid himself in the Confessor’s tomb, and then slept so long,
next day, that he came within one of missing the Coronation altogether.
He said that the frequent rehearsing of the precious lesson kept him
strong in his purpose to make its teachings yield benefits to his people;
and so, whilst his life was spared he should continue to tell the story,
and thus keep its sorrowful spectacles fresh in his memory and the springs
of pity replenished in his heart.</p>
<p>Miles Hendon and Tom Canty were favourites of the King, all through his
brief reign, and his sincere mourners when he died. The good Earl of Kent
had too much sense to abuse his peculiar privilege; but he exercised it
twice after the instance we have seen of it before he was called from this
world—once at the accession of Queen Mary, and once at the accession
of Queen Elizabeth. A descendant of his exercised it at the
accession of James I. Before this one’s son chose to use the
privilege, near a quarter of a century had elapsed, and the ‘privilege
of the Kents’ had faded out of most people’s memories; so,
when the Kent of that day appeared before Charles I. and his court and sat
down in the sovereign’s presence to assert and perpetuate the right
of his house, there was a fine stir indeed! But the matter was soon
explained, and the right confirmed. The last Earl of the line fell
in the wars of the Commonwealth fighting for the King, and the odd
privilege ended with him.</p>
<p>Tom Canty lived to be a very old man, a handsome, white-haired old fellow,
of grave and benignant aspect. As long as he lasted he was honoured;
and he was also reverenced, for his striking and peculiar costume kept the
people reminded that ‘in his time he had been royal;’ so,
wherever he appeared the crowd fell apart, making way for him, and
whispering, one to another, “Doff thy hat, it is the King’s
Ward!”—and so they saluted, and got his kindly smile in return—and
they valued it, too, for his was an honourable history.</p>
<p>Yes, King Edward VI. lived only a few years, poor boy, but he lived them
worthily. More than once, when some great dignitary, some gilded
vassal of the crown, made argument against his leniency, and urged that
some law which he was bent upon amending was gentle enough for its
purpose, and wrought no suffering or oppression which any one need
mightily mind, the young King turned the mournful eloquence of his great
compassionate eyes upon him and answered—</p>
<p>“What dost <i>thou</i> know of suffering and oppression? I and
my people know, but not thou.”</p>
<p>The reign of Edward VI. was a singularly merciful one for those harsh
times. Now that we are taking leave of him, let us try to keep this
in our minds, to his credit.</p>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/> <br/><br/> <SPAN name="c35" id="c35"></SPAN> <SPAN name="link35-403" id="link35-403"></SPAN>
<br/><br/></p>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG alt="link35-403.jpg (46K)" src="images/35-403.jpg" style="width:100%;" /><br/></div>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>FOOTNOTES AND TWAIN’S NOTES</p>
<p>{1} For Mark Twain’s note see below under the relevant chapter
heading.</p>
<p>{2} He refers to the order of baronets, or baronettes; the barones
minores, as distinct from the parliamentary barons—not, it need
hardly be said, to the baronets of later creation.</p>
<p>{3} The lords of Kingsale, descendants of De Courcy, still enjoy
this curious privilege.</p>
<p>{4} Hume.</p>
<p>{5} Ib.</p>
<p>{6} Leigh Hunt’s ‘The Town,’ p.408, quotation from
an early tourist.</p>
<p>{7} Canting terms for various kinds of thieves, beggars and
vagabonds, and their female companions.</p>
<p>{8} From ‘The English Rogue.’ London, 1665.</p>
<p>{9} Hume’s England.</p>
<p>{10} See Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull’s Blue Laws, True and False,
p. 11.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 1, Chapter IV. Christ’s Hospital Costume.</p>
<p>It is most reasonable to regard the dress as copied from the costume of
the citizens of London of that period, when long blue coats were the
common habit of apprentices and serving-men, and yellow stockings were
generally worn; the coat fits closely to the body, but has loose sleeves,
and beneath is worn a sleeveless yellow under-coat; around the waist is a
red leathern girdle; a clerical band around the neck, and a small flat
black cap, about the size of a saucer, completes the costume.—Timbs’
Curiosities of London.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 2, Chapter IV.</p>
<p>It appears that Christ’s Hospital was not originally founded as a <i>school</i>;
its object was to rescue children from the streets, to shelter, feed,
clothe them.—Timbs’ Curiosities of London.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 3, Chapter V. The Duke of Norfolk’s Condemnation
commanded.</p>
<p>The King was now approaching fast towards his end; and fearing lest
Norfolk should escape him, he sent a message to the Commons, by which he
desired them to hasten the Bill, on pretence that Norfolk enjoyed the
dignity of Earl Marshal, and it was necessary to appoint another, who
might officiate at the ensuing ceremony of installing his son Prince of
Wales.—Hume’s History of England, vol. iii. p. 307.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 4, Chapter VII.</p>
<p>It was not till the end of this reign (Henry VIII.) that any salads,
carrots, turnips, or other edible roots were produced in England. The
little of these vegetables that was used was formerly imported from
Holland and Flanders. Queen Catherine, when she wanted a salad, was
obliged to despatch a messenger thither on purpose.—Hume’s
History of England, vol. iii. p. 314.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 5, Chapter VIII. Attainder of Norfolk.</p>
<p>The House of Peers, without examining the prisoner, without trial or
evidence, passed a Bill of Attainder against him and sent it down to the
Commons . . . The obsequious Commons obeyed his (the King’s)
directions; and the King, having affixed the Royal assent to the Bill by
commissioners, issued orders for the execution of Norfolk on the morning
of January 29 (the next day).—Hume’s History of England, vol
iii. p 306.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 6, Chapter X. The Loving-cup.</p>
<p>The loving-cup, and the peculiar ceremonies observed in drinking from it,
are older than English history. It is thought that both are Danish
importations. As far back as knowledge goes, the loving-cup has
always been drunk at English banquets. Tradition explains the
ceremonies in this way. In the rude ancient times it was deemed a
wise precaution to have both hands of both drinkers employed, lest while
the pledger pledged his love and fidelity to the pledgee, the pledgee take
that opportunity to slip a dirk into him!</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 7, Chapter XI. The Duke of Norfolk’s narrow
Escape.</p>
<p>Had Henry VIII. survived a few hours longer, his order for the duke’s
execution would have been carried into effect. ‘But news being
carried to the Tower that the King himself had expired that night, the
lieutenant deferred obeying the warrant; and it was not thought advisable
by the Council to begin a new reign by the death of the greatest nobleman
in the kingdom, who had been condemned by a sentence so unjust and
tyrannical.’—Hume’s History of England, vol. iii, p.
307.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 8, Chapter XIV. The Whipping-boy.</p>
<p>James I. and Charles II. had whipping-boys, when they were little fellows,
to take their punishment for them when they fell short in their lessons;
so I have ventured to furnish my small prince with one, for my own
purposes.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTES to Chapter XV.</p>
<p>Character of Hertford.</p>
<p>The young King discovered an extreme attachment to his uncle, who was, in
the main, a man of moderation and probity.—Hume’s History of
England, vol. iii, p324.</p>
<p>But if he (the Protector) gave offence by assuming too much state, he
deserves great praise on account of the laws passed this session, by which
the rigour of former statutes was much mitigated, and some security given
to the freedom of the constitution. All laws were repealed which
extended the crime of treason beyond the statute of the twenty-fifth of
Edward III.; all laws enacted during the late reign extending the crime of
felony; all the former laws against Lollardy or heresy, together with the
statute of the Six Articles. None were to be accused for words, but
within a month after they were spoken. By these repeals several of
the most rigorous laws that ever had passed in England were annulled; and
some dawn, both of civil and religious liberty, began to appear to the
people. A repeal also passed of that law, the destruction of all
laws, by which the King’s proclamation was made of equal force with
a statute.—Ibid. vol. iii. p. 339.</p>
<p>Boiling to Death.</p>
<p>In the reign of Henry VIII. poisoners were, by Act of Parliament,
condemned to be <i>boiled to death</i>. This Act was repealed in the
following reign.</p>
<p>In Germany, even in the seventeenth century, this horrible punishment was
inflicted on coiners and counterfeiters. Taylor, the Water Poet,
describes an execution he witnessed in Hamburg in 1616. The judgment
pronounced against a coiner of false money was that he should ‘<i>be
boiled to death in oil</i>; not thrown into the vessel at once, but with a
pulley or rope to be hanged under the armpits, and then let down into the
oil <i>by degrees</i>; first the feet, and next the legs, and so to boil
his flesh from his bones alive.’—Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull’s
Blue Laws, True and False, p. 13.</p>
<p>The Famous Stocking Case.</p>
<p>A woman and her daughter, <i>nine years old</i>, were hanged in Huntingdon
for selling their souls to the devil, and raising a storm by pulling off
their stockings!—Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull’s Blue Laws, True and
False, p. 20.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTE 10, Chapter XVII. Enslaving.</p>
<p>So young a King and so ignorant a peasant were likely to make mistakes;
and this is an instance in point. This peasant was suffering from
this law <i>by anticipation</i>; the King was venting his indignation
against a law which was not yet in existence; for this hideous statute was
to have birth in this little King’s <i>own reign</i>. However, we
know, from the humanity of his character, that it could never have been
suggested by him.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTES to Chapter XXIII. Death for Trifling Larcenies.</p>
<p>When Connecticut and New Haven were framing their first codes, larceny
above the value of twelve pence was a capital crime in England—as it
had been since the time of Henry I.—Dr. J. Hammond Trumbull’s
Blue Laws, True and False, p. 17.</p>
<p>The curious old book called The English Rogue makes the limit thirteen
pence ha’penny: death being the portion of any who steal a
thing ‘above the value of thirteen pence ha’penny.’</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTES to Chapter XXVII.</p>
<p>From many descriptions of larceny the law expressly took away the benefit
of clergy: to steal a horse, or a <i>hawk</i>, or woollen cloth from
the weaver, was a hanging matter. So it was to kill a deer from the
King’s forest, or to export sheep from the kingdom.—Dr. J.
Hammond Trumbull’s Blue Laws, True and False, p.13.</p>
<p>William Prynne, a learned barrister, was sentenced (long after Edward VI.’s
time) to lose both his ears in the pillory, to degradation from the bar, a
fine of 3,000 pounds, and imprisonment for life. Three years
afterwards he gave new offence to Laud by publishing a pamphlet against
the hierarchy. He was again prosecuted, and was sentenced to lose <i>what
remained of his ears</i>, to pay a fine of 5,000 pounds, to be <i>branded
on both his cheeks</i> with the letters S. L. (for Seditious Libeller),
and to remain in prison for life. The severity of this sentence was
equalled by the savage rigour of its execution.—Ibid. p. 12.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/>NOTES to Chapter XXXIII.</p>
<p>Christ’s Hospital, or Bluecoat School, ’the noblest
institution in the world.’</p>
<p>The ground on which the Priory of the Grey Friars stood was conferred by
Henry VIII. on the Corporation of London (who caused the institution there
of a home for poor boys and girls). Subsequently, Edward VI. caused the
old Priory to be properly repaired, and founded within it that noble
establishment called the Bluecoat School, or Christ’s Hospital, for
the <i>education</i> and maintenance of orphans and the children of
indigent persons . . . Edward would not let him (Bishop Ridley) depart
till the letter was written (to the Lord Mayor), and then charged him to
deliver it himself, and signify his special request and commandment that
no time might be lost in proposing what was convenient, and apprising him
of the proceedings. The work was zealously undertaken, Ridley
himself engaging in it; and the result was the founding of Christ’s
Hospital for the education of poor children. (The King endowed several
other charities at the same time.) “Lord God,” said he,
“I yield Thee most hearty thanks that Thou hast given me life thus
long to finish this work to the glory of Thy name!” That
innocent and most exemplary life was drawing rapidly to its close, and in
a few days he rendered up his spirit to his Creator, praying God to defend
the realm from Papistry.—J. Heneage Jesse’s London: its
Celebrated Characters and Places.</p>
<p>In the Great Hall hangs a large picture of King Edward VI. seated on his
throne, in a scarlet and ermined robe, holding the sceptre in his left
hand, and presenting with the other the Charter to the kneeling Lord
Mayor. By his side stands the Chancellor, holding the seals, and
next to him are other officers of state. Bishop Ridley kneels before
him with uplifted hands, as if supplicating a blessing on the event;
whilst the Aldermen, etc., with the Lord Mayor, kneel on both sides,
occupying the middle ground of the picture; and lastly, in front, are a
double row of boys on one side and girls on the other, from the master and
matron down to the boy and girl who have stepped forward from their
respective rows, and kneel with raised hands before the King.—Timbs’
Curiosities of London, p. 98.</p>
<p>Christ’s Hospital, by ancient custom, possesses the privilege of
addressing the Sovereign on the occasion of his or her coming into the
City to partake of the hospitality of the Corporation of London.—Ibid.</p>
<p>The Dining Hall, with its lobby and organ-gallery, occupies the entire
storey, which is 187 feet long, 51 feet wide, and 47 feet high; it is lit
by nine large windows, filled with stained glass on the south side; and
is, next to Westminster Hall, the noblest room in the metropolis. Here
the boys, now about 800 in number, dine; and here are held the ’Suppings
in Public,’ to which visitors are admitted by tickets issued by the
Treasurer and by the Governors of Christ’s Hospital. The
tables are laid with cheese in wooden bowls, beer in wooden piggins,
poured from leathern jacks, and bread brought in large baskets. The
official company enter; the Lord Mayor, or President, takes his seat in a
state chair made of oak from St. Catherine’s Church, by the Tower; a
hymn is sung, accompanied by the organ; a ‘Grecian,’ or head
boy, reads the prayers from the pulpit, silence being enforced by three
drops of a wooden hammer. After prayer the supper commences, and the
visitors walk between the tables. At its close the ’trade-boys’
take up the baskets, bowls, jacks, piggins, and candlesticks, and pass in
procession, the bowing to the Governors being curiously formal. This
spectacle was witnessed by Queen Victoria and Prince Albert in 1845.</p>
<p>Among the more eminent Bluecoat boys are Joshua Barnes, editor of Anacreon
and Euripides; Jeremiah Markland, the eminent critic, particularly in
Greek Literature; Camden, the antiquary; Bishop Stillingfleet; Samuel
Richardson, the novelist; Thomas Mitchell, the translator of Aristophanes;
Thomas Barnes, many years editor of the London Times; Coleridge, Charles
Lamb, and Leigh Hunt.</p>
<p>No boy is admitted before he is seven years old, or after he is nine; and
no boy can remain in the school after he is fifteen, King’s boys and
‘Grecians’ alone excepted. There are about 500
Governors, at the head of whom are the Sovereign and the Prince of Wales.
The qualification for a Governor is payment of 500 pounds.—Ibid.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/></p>
<p>GENERAL NOTE.</p>
<p>One hears much about the ‘hideous Blue Laws of Connecticut,’
and is accustomed to shudder piously when they are mentioned. There
are people in America—and even in England!—who imagine that
they were a very monument of malignity, pitilessness, and inhumanity;
whereas in reality they were about the first <i>sweeping departure from
judicial atrocity</i> which the ‘civilised’ world had seen.
This humane and kindly Blue Law Code, of two hundred and forty years
ago, stands all by itself, with ages of bloody law on the further side of
it, and a century and three-quarters of bloody English law on <i>this</i>
side of it.</p>
<p>There has never been a time—under the Blue Laws or any other—when
above <i>fourteen</i> crimes were punishable by death in Connecticut.
But in England, within the memory of men who are still hale in body
and mind, <i>two hundred and twenty-three</i> crimes were punishable by
death! {10} These facts are worth knowing—and worth thinking
about, too.</p>
<p><br/></p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />